The Best Psychic Stories
edited by Joseph Lewis French
copyright 1920 by Boni & Liveright, New York
contents: 1.When the World Was Young
2.The Return 3.The Second
Generation 4.Joseph – A Story 5.The Clavecin – Bruges 6.Ligeia
7.The Sylph and the Father 8.A
Ghost 9.The Eyes of the Panther 10.Photographing Invisible Beings 11.The Sin-Eater 12.Ghosts in Solid Form 13.The Phantom Armies Seen in France 14.The Portal of the Unknown 15.The Supernormal: Experiences 16.Nature-Spirits, or Elementals 17.A Witch’s Den 18.Some Remarkable Experiences of Famous
Persons
1.WHEN THE WORLD WAS
YOUNG[1]
By
Jack London
I
He was a very quiet,
self-possessed sort of man, sitting a moment on top of the wall to sound the
damp darkness for warnings of the dangers it might conceal. But the plummet of
his hearing brought nothing to him save the moaning of wind through invisible
trees and the rustling of leaves on swaying branches. A heavy fog drifted and
drove before the wind, and though he could not see this fog, the wet of it blew
upon his face, and the wall on which he sat was wet.
Without noise he had
climbed to the top of the wall from the outside, and without noise he dropped
to the ground on the inside. From his pocket he drew an electric night-stick,
but he did not use it. Dark as the way was, he was not anxious for light.
Carrying the night-stick in his hand, his finger on the button, he advanced
through the darkness. The ground was velvety and springy to his feet, being
carpeted with dead pine-needles and leaves and mold which evidently had been
undisturbed for years. Leaves and branches brushed against his body, but so
dark was it that he could not avoid them. Soon he walked with his hand
stretched out gropingly before him, and more than once the hand fetched up
against the solid trunks of massive trees. All about him he knew were these
trees; he sensed the loom of them everywhere; and he experienced a strange
feeling of microscopic smallness in the midst of great bulks leaning toward him
to crush him. Beyond, he knew, was the house, and he expected to find some
trail or winding path that would lead easily to it.
Once, he found himself
trapped. On every side he groped against trees and branches, or blundered into
thickets of underbrush, until there seemed no way out. Then he turned on his
light, circumspectly, directing its rays to the ground at his feet. Slowly and
carefully he moved it about him, the white brightness showing in sharp detail
all the obstacles to his progress. He saw an opening between huge-trunked
trees, and advanced through it, putting out the light and treading on dry
footing as yet protected from the drip of the fog by the dense foliage
overhead. His sense of direction was good, and he knew he was going toward the
house.
And then the thing
happened—the thing unthinkable and unexpected. His descending foot came down
upon something that was soft and alive, and that arose with a snort under the
weight of his body. He sprang clear, and crouched for another spring, anywhere,
tense and expectant, keyed for the onslaught of the unknown. He waited a
moment, wondering what manner of animal it was that had arisen from under his
foot and that now made no sound nor movement and that must be crouching and
waiting just as tensely and expectantly as he. The strain became unbearable.
Holding the night-stick before him, he pressed the button, saw, and screamed
aloud in terror. He was prepared for anything, from a frightened calf or fawn
to a belligerent lion, but he was not prepared for what he saw. In that instant
his tiny searchlight, sharp and white, had shown him what a thousand years
would not enable him to forget—a man, huge and blond, yellow-haired and
yellow-bearded, naked except for soft-tanned moccasins and what seemed a
goat-skin about his middle. Arms and legs were bare, as were his shoulders and
most of his chest. The skin was smooth and hairless, but browned by sun and
wind, while under it heavy muscles were knotted like fat snakes.
Still, this alone,
unexpected as it well was, was not what had made the man scream out. What had
caused his terror was the unspeakable ferocity of the face, the wild-animal
glare of the blue eyes scarcely dazzled by the light, the pine-needles matted
and clinging in the beard and hair, and the whole formidable body crouched and
in the act of springing at him. Practically in the instant he saw all this, and
while his scream still rang, the thing leaped, he flung his night-stick full at
it, and threw himself to the ground. He felt its feet and shins strike against
his ribs, and he bounded up and away while the thing itself hurled onward in a
heavy crashing fall into the underbrush.
As the noise of the fall
ceased, the man stopped and on hands and knees waited. He could hear the
thing moving about, searching for him, and he was afraid to advertise his
location by attempting further flight. He knew that inevitably he would crackle
the underbrush and be pursued. Once he drew out his revolver, then changed his
mind. He had recovered his composure and hoped to get away without noise.
Several times he heard the thing beating up the thickets for him, and there
were moments when it, too, remained still and listened. This gave an idea to
the man. One of his hands was resting on a chunk of dead wood. Carefully, first
feeling about him in the darkness to know that the full swing of his arm was
clear, he raised the chunk of wood and threw it. It was not a large piece, and
it went far, landing noisily in a bush. He heard the thing bound into the bush,
and at the same time himself crawled steadily away. And on hands and knees,
slowly and cautiously, he crawled on, till his knees were wet on the soggy
mold. When he listened he heard naught but the moaning wind and the drip-drip
of the fog from the branches. Never abating his caution, he stood erect and
went on to the stone wall, over which he climbed and dropped down to the road
outside.
Feeling his way in a
clump of bushes, he drew out a bicycle and prepared to mount. He was in the act
of driving the gear around with his foot for the purpose of getting the
opposite pedal in position, when he heard the thud of a heavy body that landed
lightly and evidently on its feet. He did not wait for more, but ran, with
hands on the handles of his bicycle, until he was able to vault astride the
saddle, catch the pedals, and start a spurt. Behind he could
hear the quick thud-thud of feet on the dust of the road, but he drew
away from it and lost it.
Unfortunately, he had
started away from the direction of town and was heading higher up into the
hills. He knew that on this particular road there were no cross roads. The only
way back was past that terror, and he could not steel himself to face it. At the
end of half an hour, finding himself on an ever increasing grade, he
dismounted. For still greater safety, leaving the wheel by the roadside, he
climbed through a fence into what he decided was a hillside pasture, spread a
newspaper on the ground, and sat down.
"Gosh!" he
said aloud, mopping the sweat and fog from his face.
And "Gosh!" he
said once again, while rolling a cigarette and as he pondered the problem of
getting back.
But he made no attempt
to go back. He was resolved not to face that road in the dark, and with head
bowed on knees, he dozed, waiting for daylight.
How long afterward he
did not know, he was awakened by the yapping bark of a young coyote. As he
looked about and located it on the brow of the hill behind him, he noted the
change that had come over the face of the night. The fog was gone; the stars
and moon were out; even the wind had died down. It had transformed into a balmy
California summer night. He tried to doze again, but the yap of the coyote
disturbed him. Half asleep, he heard a wild and eery chant. Looking about him,
he noticed that the coyote had ceased its noise and was running away along the
crest of the hill, and behind it, in full pursuit, no longer chanting, ran the
naked creature he had encountered in the garden. It was a young coyote,
and it was being overtaken when the chase passed from view. The man trembled as
with a chill as he started to his feet, clambered over the fence, and mounted
his wheel. But it was his chance and he knew it. The terror was no longer
between him and Mill Valley.
He sped at a breakneck
rate down the hill, but in the turn at the bottom, in the deep shadows, he
encountered a chuck-hole and pitched headlong over the handle bar.
"It's sure not my
night," he muttered, as he examined the broken fork of the machine.
Shouldering the useless
wheel, he trudged on. In time he came to the stone wall, and, half disbelieving
his experience, he sought in the road for tracks, and found them—moccasin
tracks, large ones, deep-bitten into the dust at the toes. It was while bending
over them, examining, that again he heard the eery chant. He had seen the thing
pursue the coyote, and he knew he had no chance on a straight run. He did not
attempt it, contenting himself with hiding in the shadows on the off side of the
road.
And again he saw the
thing that was like a naked man, running swiftly and lightly and singing as it
ran. Opposite him it paused, and his heart stood still. But instead of coming
toward his hiding-place, it leaped into the air, caught the branch of a roadside
tree, and swung swiftly upward, from limb to limb, like an ape. It swung across
the wall, and a dozen feet above the top, into the branches of another tree,
and dropped out of sight to the ground. The man waited a few wondering minutes,
then started on.
II
Dave Slotter leaned
belligerently against the desk that barred the way to the private office of
James Ward, senior partner of the firm of Ward, Knowles & Co. Dave was
angry. Every one in the outer office had looked him over suspiciously, and the man
who faced him was excessively suspicious.
"You just tell Mr.
Ward it's important," he urged.
"I tell you he is
dictating and cannot be disturbed," was the answer. "Come
to-morrow."
"To-morrow will be
too late. You just trot along and tell Mr. Ward it's a matter of life and
death."
The secretary hesitated
and Dave seized the advantage.
"You just tell him
I was across the bay in Mill Valley last night, and that I want to put him wise
to something."
"What name?"
was the query.
"Never mind the
name. He don't know me."
When Dave was shown into
the private office, he was still in the belligerent frame of mind, but when he
saw a large fair man whirl in a revolving chair from dictating to a
stenographer to face him, Dave's demeanor abruptly changed. He did not know why
it changed, and he was secretly angry with himself.
"You are Mr.
Ward?" Dave asked with a fatuousness that still further irritated him. He
had never intended it at all.
"Yes," came
the answer. "And who are you?"
"Harry
Bancroft," Dave lied. "You don't know me, and my name don't
matter."
"You sent in word
that you were in Mill Valley last night?"
"You live there,
don't you?" Dave countered, looking suspiciously at the stenographer.
"Yes. What do you
mean to see me about? I am very busy."
"I'd like to see
you alone, sir."
Mr. Ward gave him a
quick, penetrating look, hesitated, then made up his mind.
"That will do for a
few minutes, Miss Potter."
The girl arose, gathered
her notes together, and passed out. Dave looked at Mr. James Ward wonderingly,
until that gentleman broke his train of inchoate thought.
"Well?"
"I was over in Mill
Valley last night," Dave began confusedly.
"I've heard that
before. What do you want?"
And Dave proceeded in
the face of a growing conviction that was unbelievable.
"I was at your
house, or in the grounds, I mean."
"What were you
doing there?"
"I came to break
in," Dave answered in all frankness. "I heard you lived all alone
with a Chinaman for cook, and it looked good to me. Only I didn't break in.
Something happened that prevented. That's why I'm here. I come to warn you. I
found a wild man loose in your grounds—a regular devil. He could pull a guy
like me to pieces. He gave me the run of my life. He don't wear any clothes to
speak of, he climbs trees like a monkey, and he runs like a deer. I saw him
chasing a coyote, and the last I saw of it, by God, he was gaining on it."
Dave paused and looked
for the effect that would follow his words. But no effect came. James Ward was
quietly curious, and that was all.
"Very remarkable, very
remarkable," he murmured. "A wild man, you say. Why have you come to
tell me?"
"To warn you of
your danger. I'm something of a hard proposition myself, but I don't believe in
killing people ... that is, unnecessarily. I realized that you was in danger. I
thought I'd warn you. Honest, that's the game. Of course, if you wanted to give
me anything for my trouble, I'd take it. That was in my mind, too. But I don't
care whether you give me anything or not. I've warned you anyway, and done my
duty."
Mr. Ward meditated and
drummed on the surface of his desk. Dave noticed that his hands were large,
powerful, withal well-cared for despite their dark sunburn. Also, he noted what
had already caught his eye before—a tiny strip of flesh-colored courtplaster on
the forehead over one eye. And still the thought that forced itself into his
mind was unbelievable.
Mr. Ward took a wallet
from his inside coat pocket, drew out a greenback, and passed it to Dave, who
noted as he pocketed it that it was for twenty dollars.
"Thank you,"
said Mr. Ward, indicating that the interview was at an end. "I shall have
the matter investigated. A wild man running loose is dangerous."
But so quiet a man was
Mr. Ward, that Dave's courage returned. Besides, a new theory had suggested
itself. The wild man was evidently Mr. Ward's brother, a lunatic privately
confined. Dave had heard of such things. Perhaps Mr. Ward wanted it kept quiet.
That was why he had given him the twenty dollars.
"Say," Dave
began, "now I come to think of it that wild man looked a lot like
you—"
That was as far as Dave
got, for at that moment he witnessed a transformation and found himself gazing
into the same unspeakably ferocious blue eyes of the night before, at the same
clutching talon-like hands, and at the same formidable bulk in the act of
springing upon him. But this time Dave had no night-stick to throw, and he was
caught by the biceps of both arms in a grip so terrific that it made him groan
with pain. He saw the large white teeth exposed, for all the world as a dog's
about to bite. Mr. Ward's beard brushed his face as the teeth went in for the
grip of his throat. But the bite was not given. Instead, Dave felt the other's
body stiffen as with an iron restraint, and then he was flung aside, without
effort but with such force that only the wall stopped his momentum and dropped
him gasping to the floor.
"What do you mean
by coming here and trying to blackmail me?" Mr. Ward was snarling at him.
"Here, give me back that money."
Dave passed the bill
back without a word.
"I thought you came
here with good intentions. I know you now. Let me see and hear no more of you,
or I'll put you in prison where you belong. Do you understand?"
"Yes, sir,"
Dave gasped.
"Then go."
And Dave went, without
further word, both his biceps aching intolerably from the bruise of that
tremendous grip. As his hand rested on the door knob, he was stopped.
"You were
lucky," Mr. Ward was saying, and Dave noted that his face and eyes were
cruel and gloating and proud. "You were lucky. Had I wanted, I could have
torn your muscles out of your arms and thrown them in the waste basket
there."
"Yes, sir,"
said Dave; and absolute conviction vibrated in his voice.
He opened the door and
passed out. The secretary looked at him interrogatively.
"Gosh!" was all
Dave vouchsafed, and with this utterance passed out of the offices and the
story.
III
James G. Ward was forty
years of age, a successful business man, and very unhappy. For forty years he
had vainly tried to solve a problem that was really himself and that with
increasing years became more and more a woeful affliction. In himself he was
two men, and, chronologically speaking, these men were several thousand years
or so apart. He had studied the question of dual personality probably more
profoundly than any half dozen of the leading specialists in that intricate and
mysterious psychological field. In himself he was a different case from any
that had been recorded. Even the most fanciful flights of the fiction-writers
had not quite hit upon him. He was not a Dr. Jekyll and Mr. Hyde, nor was he
like the unfortunate young man in Kipling's Greatest Story in the World.
His two personalities were so mixed that they were practically aware of
themselves and of each other all the time.
His one self was that of
a man whose rearing and education were modern and who had lived through the
latter part of the nineteenth century and well into the first decade of the
twentieth. His other self he had located as a savage and a barbarian living
under the primitive conditions of several thousand years before. But which self
was he, and which was the other, he could never tell. For he was both selves,
and both selves all the time. Very rarely indeed did it happen that one self
did not know what the other was doing. Another thing was that he had no visions
nor memories of the past in which that early self had lived. That early self
lived in the present; but while it lived in the present, it was under the
compulsion to live the way of life that must have been in that distant past.
In his childhood he had
been a problem to his father and mother, and to the family doctors, though
never had they come within a thousand miles of hitting upon the clue to his
erratic conduct. Thus, they could not understand his excessive somnolence in
the forenoon, nor his excessive activity at night. When they found him
wandering along the hallways at night, or climbing over giddy roofs, or running
in the hills, they decided he was a somnambulist. In reality he was wide-eyed
awake and merely under the night-roaming compulsion of his early life.
Questioned by an obtuse medico, he once told the truth and suffered the
ignominy of having the revelation contemptuously labeled and dismissed as
"dreams."
The point was, that as
twilight and evening came on he became wakeful. The four walls of a room were
an irk and a restraint. He heard a thousand voices whispering to him
through the darkness. The night called to him, for he was, for that period of
the twenty-four hours, essentially a night-prowler. But nobody understood, and
never again did he attempt to explain. They classified him as a sleep-walker
and took precautions accordingly—precautions that very often were futile. As
his childhood advanced, he grew more cunning, so that the major portion of all his
nights were spent in the open at realizing his other self. As a result, he
slept in the forenoons. Morning studies and schools were impossible, and it was
discovered that only in the afternoons, under private teachers, could he be
taught anything. Thus was his modern self educated and developed.
But a problem, as a
child, he ever remained. He was known as a little demon of insensate cruelty
and viciousness. The family medicos privately adjudged him a mental monstrosity
and a degenerate. Such few boy companions as he had, hailed him as a wonder,
though they were all afraid of him. He could outclimb, outswim, outrun,
outdevil any of them; while none dared fight with him. He was too terribly
strong, too madly furious.
When nine years of age
he ran away to the hills, where he flourished, night-prowling, for seven weeks
before he was discovered and brought home. The marvel was how he had managed to
subsist and keep in condition during that time. They did not know, and he never
told them, of the rabbits he had killed, of the quail, young and old, he had
captured and devoured, of the farmers' chicken-roosts he had raided, nor of the
cave-lair he had made and carpeted with dry leaves and grasses and in
which he had slept in warmth and comfort, through the forenoons of many days.
At college he was
notorious for his sleepiness and stupidity during the morning lectures and for
his brilliance in the afternoon. By collateral reading and by borrowing the
notebook of his fellow students he managed to scrape through the detestable
morning courses, while his afternoon courses were triumphs. In football he
proved a giant and a terror, and, in almost every form of track athletics, save
for strange Berserker rages that were sometimes displayed, he could be depended
upon to win. But his fellows were afraid to box with him, and he signalized his
last wrestling bout by sinking his teeth into the shoulder of his opponent.
After college, his
father, in despair, sent him among the cow-punchers of a Wyoming ranch. Three
months later the doughty cowmen confessed he was too much for them and
telegraphed his father to come and take the wild man away. Also, when the
father arrived to take him away, the cowmen allowed that they would vastly
prefer chumming with howling cannibals, gibbering lunatics, cavorting gorillas,
grizzly bears, and man-eating tigers than with this particular young college
product with hair parted in the middle.
There was one exception
to the lack of memory of the life of his early self, and that was language. By some
quirk of atavism, a certain portion of that early self's language had come down
to him as a racial memory. In moments of happiness, exaltation, or battle, he
was prone to burst out in wild barbaric songs or chants. It was by this means
that he located in time and space that strayed half of him who should have been
dead and dust for thousands of years. He sang, once, and deliberately,
several of the ancient chants in the presence of Professor Wertz, who gave
courses in old Saxon and who was a philologist of repute and passion. At the
first one, the professor pricked up his ears and demanded to know what mongrel
tongue or hog-German it was. When the second chant was rendered, the professor
was highly excited. James Ward then concluded the performance by giving a song
that always irresistibly rushed to his lips when he was engaged in fierce
struggling or fighting. Then it was that Professor Wertz proclaimed it no
hog-German, but early German, or early Teuton, of a date that must far precede
anything that had ever been discovered and handed down by the scholars. So
early was it that it was beyond him; yet it was filled with haunting
reminiscences of word-forms he knew and which his trained intuition told him
were true and real. He demanded the source of the songs, and asked to borrow
the previous book that contained them. Also, he demanded to know why young Ward
had always posed as being profoundly ignorant of the German language. And Ward
could neither explain his ignorance nor lend the book. Whereupon, after
pleadings and entreaties that extended through weeks, Professor Wertz took a
dislike to the young man, believed him a liar, and classified him as a man of
monstrous selfishness for not giving him a glimpse of this wonderful screed
that was older than the oldest any philologist had ever known or dreamed.
But little good did it
do this much-mixed young man to know that half of him was late American and the
other half early Teuton. Nevertheless, the late American in him was no
weakling, and he (if he were a he and had a shred of existence outside of these
two) compelled an adjustment or compromise between his one self that was a
night-prowling savage that kept his other self sleepy of mornings, and that
other self that was cultured and refined and that wanted to be normal and love
and prosecute business like other people. The afternoons and early evenings he
gave to the one, the nights to the other; the forenoons and parts of the nights
were devoted to sleep for the twain. But in the mornings he slept in bed like a
civilized man. In the night time he slept like a wild animal, as he had slept
the night Dave Slotter stepped on him in the woods.
Persuading his father to
advance the capital, he went into business, and keen and successful business he
made of it, devoting his afternoons whole-souled to it, while his partner
devoted the mornings. The early evenings he spent socially, but, as the hour
grew to nine or ten, an irresistible restlessness overcame him and he
disappeared from the haunts of men until the next afternoon. Friends and
acquaintances thought that he spent much of his time in sport. And they were
right, though they never would have dreamed of the nature of the sport, even if
they had seen him running coyotes in night-chases over the hills of Mill
Valley. Neither were the schooner captains believed when they reported seeing,
on cold winter mornings, a man swimming in the tide-rips of Raccoon Straits or
in the swift currents between Goat Island and Angel Island miles from shore.
In the bungalow at Mill
Valley he lived alone, save for Lee Sing, the Chinese cook and factotum, who
knew much about the strangeness of his master, who was paid well for
saying nothing, and who never did say anything. After the satisfaction of his
nights, a morning's sleep, and a breakfast of Lee Sing's, James Ward crossed
the bay to San Francisco on a midday ferryboat and went to the club and on to
his office, as normal and conventional a man of business as could be found in
the city. But as the evening lengthened, the night called to him. There came a
quickening of all his perceptions and a restlessness. His hearing was suddenly
acute; the myriad night-noises told him a luring and familiar story; and, if
alone, he would begin to pace up and down the narrow room like any caged animal
from the wild.
Once, he ventured to
fall in love. He never permitted himself that diversion again. He was afraid.
And for many a day the young lady, scared at least out of a portion of her
young ladyhood, bore on her arms and shoulders and wrists divers black-and-blue
bruises—tokens of caresses which he had bestowed in all fond gentleness but too
late at night. There was the mistake. Had he ventured love-making in the
afternoon, all would have been well, for it would have been as the quiet
gentleman that he would have made love—but at night it was the uncouth,
wife-stealing savage of the dark German forests. Out of his wisdom, he decided
that afternoon love-making could be prosecuted successfully; but out of the
same wisdom he was convinced that marriage would prove a ghastly failure. He
found it appalling to imagine being married and encountering his wife after
dark.
So he had eschewed all
love-making, regulated his dual life, cleaned up a million in business,
fought shy of match-making mamas and bright- and eager-eyed young ladies of
various ages, met Lilian Gersdale and made it a rigid observance never to see
her later than eight o'clock in the evening, ran of nights after his coyotes,
and slept in forest lairs—and through it all had kept his secret save for Lee
Sing ... and now, Dave Slotter. It was the latter's discovery of both his
selves that frightened him. In spite of the counter fright he had given the
burglar, the latter might talk. And even if he did not, sooner or later he
would be found out by some one else.
Thus it was that James
Ward made a fresh and heroic effort to control the Teutonic barbarian that was
half of him. So well did he make it a point to see Lilian in the afternoons and
early evenings, that the time came when she accepted him for better or worse,
and when he prayed privily and fervently that it was not for worse. During this
period no prize-fighter ever trained more harshly and faithfully for a contest
than he trained to subdue the wild savage in him. Among other things, he strove
to exhaust himself during the day, so that sleep would render him deaf to the
call of the night. He took a vacation from the office and went on long hunting
trips, following the deer through the most inaccessible and rugged country he
could find—and always in the daytime. Night found him indoors and tired. At
home he installed a score of exercise machines, and where other men might go
through a particular movement ten times, he went hundreds. Also, as a
compromise, he built a sleeping porch on the second story. Here he at least
breathed the blessed night air. Double screens prevented him from escaping
into the woods, and each night Lee Sing locked him in and each morning let him
out.
The time came, in the
month of August, when he engaged additional servants to assist Lee Sing and
dared a house party in his Mill Valley bungalow. Lilian, her mother and
brother, and half a dozen mutual friends, were the guests. For two days and
nights all went well. And on the third night, playing bridge till eleven
o'clock, he had reason to be proud of himself. His restlessness he successfully
hid, but as luck would have it, Lilian Gersdale was his opponent on his right.
She was a frail delicate flower of a woman, and in his night-mood her very
frailty incensed him. Not that he loved her less, but that he felt almost
irresistibly impelled to reach out and paw and maul her. Especially was this
true when she was engaged in playing a winning hand against him.
He had one of the
deer-hounds brought in, and, when it seemed he must fly to pieces with the
tension, a caressing hand laid on the animal brought him relief. These contacts
with the hairy coat gave him instant easement and enabled him to play out the
evening. Nor did any one guess the terrible struggle their host was making, the
while he laughed so carelessly and played so keenly and deliberately.
When they separated for
the night, he saw to it that he parted from Lilian in the presence of the
others. Once on his sleeping porch, and safely locked in, he doubled and
tripled and even quadrupled his exercises until, exhausted, he lay down on the
couch to woo sleep and to ponder two problems that especially troubled him.
One was this matter of exercise. It was a paradox. The more he exercised in
this excessive fashion, the stronger he became. While it was true that he thus
quite tired out his night-running Teutonic self, it seemed that he was merely
setting back the fatal day when his strength would be too much for him and
overpower him, and then it would be a strength more terrible than he had yet
known. The other problem was that of his marriage and of the stratagems he must
employ in order to avoid his wife after dark. And thus fruitlessly pondering he
fell asleep.
Now, where the huge
grizzly bear came from that night was long a mystery, while the people of the
Springs Brothers' Circus, showing at Sausalito, searched long and vainly for
"Big Ben, the Biggest Grizzly in Captivity." But Big Ben escaped,
and, out of the mazes of half a thousand bungalows and country estates,
selected the grounds of James J. Ward for visitation. The first Mr. Ward knew
was when he found himself on his feet, quivering and tense, a surge of battle
in his breast and on his lips the old war-chant. From without came a wild
baying and bellowing of the hounds. And sharp as a knife-thrust through the
pandemonium came the agony of a stricken dog—his dog, he knew.
Not stopping for
slippers, pajama-clad, he burst through the door Lee Sing had so carefully
locked, and sped down the stairs and out into the night. As his naked feet
struck the graveled driveway, he stopped abruptly, reached under the steps to a
hiding-place he knew well, and pulled forth a huge knotty club—his old
companion on many a mad night adventure on the hills. The frantic hullabaloo of
the dogs was coming nearer, and, swinging the club, he sprang straight
into the thickets to meet it.
The aroused household
assembled on the wide veranda. Somebody turned on the electric lights, but they
could see nothing but one another's frightened faces. Beyond the brightly
illuminated driveway the trees formed a wall of impenetrable blackness. Yet
somewhere in that blackness a terrible struggle was going on. There was an
infernal outcry of animals, a great snarling and growling, the sound of blows
being struck, and a smashing and crashing of underbrush by heavy bodies.
The tide of battle swept
out from among the trees and upon the driveway just beneath the onlookers. Then
they saw. Mrs. Gersdale cried out and clung fainting to her son. Lilian,
clutching the railing so spasmodically that a bruising hurt was left in her
finger-ends for days, gazed horror-stricken at a yellow-haired, wild-eyed giant
whom she recognized as the man who was to be her husband. He was swinging a
great club, and fighting furiously and calmly with a shaggy monster that was
bigger than any bear she had ever seen. One rip of the beast's claws had
dragged away Ward's pajama-coat and streaked his flesh with blood.
While most of Lilian
Gersdale's fright was for the man beloved, there was a large portion of it due
to the man himself. Never had she dreamed so formidable and magnificent a
savage lurked under the starched shirt and conventional garb of her betrothed.
And never had she had any conception of how a man battled. Such a battle was
certainly not modern; nor was she there beholding a modern man, though she did
not know it. For this was not Mr. James J. Ward, the San Francisco
business man, but one unnamed and unknown, a crude, rude savage creature who,
by some freak of chance, lived again after thrice a thousand years.
The hounds, ever
maintaining their mad uproar, circled about the fight, or dashed in and out,
distracting the bear. When the animal turned to meet such flanking assaults,
the man leaped in and the club came down. Angered afresh by every such blow,
the bear would rush, and the man, leaping and skipping, avoiding the dogs, went
backwards or circled to one side or the other. Whereupon the dogs, taking
advantage of the opening, would again spring in and draw the animal's wrath to
them.
The end came suddenly.
Whirling, the grizzly caught a hound with a wide sweeping cuff that sent the
brute, its ribs caved in and its back broken, hurtling twenty feet. Then the
human brute went mad. A foaming rage flecked the lips that parted with a wild
inarticulate cry, as it sprang in, swung the club mightily in both hands, and
brought it down full on the head of the uprearing grizzly. Not even the skull
of a grizzly could withstand the crushing force of such a blow, and the animal
went down to meet the worrying of the hounds. And through their scurrying
leaped the man, squarely upon the body, where, in the white electric light,
resting on his club, he chanted a triumph in an unknown tongue—a song so
ancient that Professor Wertz would have given ten years of his life for it.
His guests rushed to
possess him and acclaim him, but James Ward, suddenly looking out of the eyes
of the early Teuton, saw the fair frail Twentieth Century girl he loved, and
felt something snap in his brain. He staggered weakly toward her, dropped the
club, and nearly fell. Something had gone wrong with him. Inside his brain was
an intolerable agony. It seemed as if the soul of him were flying asunder.
Following the excited gaze of the others, he glanced back and saw the carcass
of the bear. The sight filled him with fear. He uttered a cry and would have
fled, had they not restrained him and led him into the bungalow.
000
James J. Ward is still
at the head of the firm of Ward, Knowles & Co. But he no longer lives in
the country; nor does he run of nights after the coyotes under the moon. The
early Teuton in him died the night of the Mill Valley fight with the bear.
James J. Ward is now wholly James J. Ward, and he shares no part of his being
with any vagabond anachronism from the younger world. And so wholly is James J.
Ward modern, that he knows in all its bitter fullness the curse of civilized
fear. He is now afraid of the dark, and night in the forest is to him a thing
of abysmal terror. His city house is of the spick and span order, and he
evinces a great interest in burglar-proof devices. His home is a tangle of
electric wires, and after bed-time a guest can scarcely breathe without setting
off an alarm. Also, he has invented a combination keyless door-lock that
travelers may carry in their vest pockets and apply immediately and
successfully under all circumstances. But his wife does not deem him a coward.
She knows better. And, like any hero, he is content to rest on his laurels. His
bravery is never questioned by those of his friends who are aware of the Mill
Valley episode.
2.THE RETURN[2]
By
Algernon Blackwood
It was curious—that
sense of dull uneasiness that came over him so suddenly, so stealthily at first
he scarcely noticed it, but with such marked increase after a time that he
presently got up and left the theater. His seat was on the gangway of the dress
circle, and he slipped out awkwardly in the middle of what seemed to be the
best and jolliest song of the piece. The full house was shaking with laughter;
so infectious was the gaiety that even strangers turned to one another as much
as to say, "Now, isn't that funny?"
It was curious, too, the
way the feeling first got into him at all, and in the full swing of laughter,
music, light-heartedness; for it came as a vague suggestion, "I've
forgotten something—something I meant to do—something of importance. What in the
world was it, now?" And he thought hard, searching vainly through his
mind; then dismissed it as the dancing caught his attention. It came back a
little later again, during a passage of long-winded talk that bored him and set
his attention free once more, but came more strongly this time, insisting on an
answer. What could it have been that he had overlooked, left undone, omitted to
see to? It went on nibbling at the subconscious part of him. Several times this
happened, this dismissal and return, till at last the thing declared itself
more plainly—and he felt bothered, troubled, distinctly uneasy.
He was wanted somewhere.
There was somewhere else he ought to be. That describes it best, perhaps. Some
engagement of moment had entirely slipped his memory—an engagement that
involved another person, too. But where, what, with whom? And, at length, this
vague uneasiness amounted to positive discomfort, so that he felt unable to
enjoy the piece, and left abruptly. Like a man to whom comes suddenly the
horrible idea that the match he lit his cigarette with and flung into the
waste-paper basket on leaving was not really out—a sort of panic distress—he
jumped into a taxicab and hurried to his flat to find everything in order, of
course; no smoke, no fire, no smell of burning.
But his evening was
spoiled. He sat smoking in his armchair at home, this business man of forty,
practical in mind, of character some called stolid, cursing himself for an
imaginative fool. It was now too late to go back to the theater; the club bored
him; he spent an hour with the evening papers, dipping into books, sipping a
long cool drink, doing odds and ends about the flat. "I'll go to bed early
for a change," he laughed, but really all the time fighting—yes,
deliberately fighting—this strange attack of uneasiness that so insidiously
grew upwards, outwards from the buried depths of him that sought so strenuously
to deny it. It never occurred to him that he was ill. He was not ill. His
health was thunderingly good. He was as robust as a coal-heaver.
The flat was roomy, high
up on the top floor, yet in a busy part of town, so that the roar of traffic
mounted round it like a sea. Through the open windows came the fresh night
air of June. He had never noticed before how sweet the London night air could
be, and that not all the smoke and dust could smother a certain touch of wild
fragrance that tinctured it with perfume—yes, almost perfume—as of the country.
He swallowed a draught of it as he stood there, staring out across the tangled
world of roofs and chimney-pots. He saw the procession of the clouds; he saw
the stars; he saw the moonlight falling in a shower of silver spears upon the
slates and wires and steeples. And something in him quickened—something that
had never stirred before.
He turned with a horrid
start, for the uneasiness had of a sudden leaped within him like an animal.
There was some one in the flat.
Instantly, with
action—even this slight action—the fancy vanished; but, all the same, he
switched on the electric lights and made a search. For it seemed to him that
some one had crept up close behind him while he stood there watching the
night—some one, whose silent presence fingered with unerring touch both this
new thing that had quickened in his heart and that sense of original deep
uneasiness. He was amazed at himself—angry—indignant that he could be thus
foolishly upset over nothing, yet at the same time profoundly distressed at
this vehement growth of a new thing in his well-ordered personality. Growth? He
dismissed the word the moment it occurred to him—but it had occurred to him. It
stayed. While he searched the empty flat, the long passages, the gloomy bedroom
at the end, the little hall where he kept his overcoats and golf sticks, it
stayed. Growth! It was oddly disquieting. Growth to him involved, though
he neither acknowledged nor recognized the truth perhaps, some kind of
undesirable changeableness, instability, unbalance.
Yet singular as it all
was, he realized that the uneasiness and the sudden appreciation of beauty that
was so new to him had both entered by the same door into his being. When he
came back to the front room he noticed that he was perspiring. There were
little drops of moisture on his forehead. And down his spine ran chills,
little, faint quivers of cold. He was shivering.
He lit his big
meerschaum pipe, and left the lights all burning. The feeling that there was
something he had overlooked, forgotten, left undone, had vanished. Whatever the
original cause of this absurd uneasiness might be—he called it absurd on
purpose because he now realized in the depths of him that it was really more
vital than he cared about—it was much nearer to discovery than before. It
dodged about just below the threshold of discovery. It was as close as that.
Any moment he would know what it was; he would remember. Yes, he would remember.
Meanwhile, he was in the right place. No desire to go elsewhere afflicted him,
as in the theater. Here was the place, here in the flat.
And then it was with a
kind of sudden burst and rush—it seemed to him the only way to phrase it—memory
gave up her dead.
At first he only caught
her peeping round the corner at him, drawing aside a corner of an enormous
curtain, as it were; striving for more complete entrance as though the mass of
it were difficult to move. But he understood, he knew, he recognized. It was
enough for that. As an entrance into his being—heart, mind, soul—was being
attempted and the entrance because of his stolid temperament was difficult of
accomplishment, there was effort, strain. Something in him had first to be
opened up, widened, made soft and ready as by an operation, before full
entrance could be effected. This much he grasped though for the life of him he
could not have put it into words. Also he knew who it was that sought an
entrance. Deliberately from himself he withheld the name. But he knew as surely
as though Straughan stood in the room and faced him with a knife saying,
"Let me in, let me in. I wish you to know I'm here. I'm clearing a way!
You recall our promise?"
He rose from his chair
and went to the open window again, the strange fear slowly passing. The cool
air fanned his cheeks. Beauty till now had scarcely ever brushed the surface of
his soul. He had never troubled his head about it. It passed him by
indifferent; and he had ever loathed the mouthy prating of it on others' lips.
He was practical; beauty was for dreamers, for women, for men who had means and
leisure. He had not exactly scorned it; rather it had never touched his life,
to sweeten, to cheer, to uplift. Artists for him were like monks—another sex
almost—useless beings who never helped the world go round. He was for action
always, work, activity, achievement as he saw them. He remembered Straughan
vaguely—Straughan, the ever impecunious friend of his youth, always talking of
color and sound—mysterious, ineffectual things. He even forgot what they had
quarreled about, if they had quarreled at all even; or why they had gone apart
all these years ago. And certainly he had forgotten any promise. Memory as yet
only peeped at him round the corner of that huge curtain tentatively,
suggestively, yet—he was obliged to admit it—somewhat winningly. He was
conscious of this gentle, sweet seductiveness that now replaced his fear.
And as he stood now at
the open window peering over huge London, beauty came close and smote him
between the eyes. She came blindingly, with her train of stars and clouds and
perfumes. Night, mysterious, myriad-eyed, and flaming across her sea of haunted
shadows invaded his heart and shook him with her immemorial wonder and delight.
He found no words of course to clothe the new unwonted sensations. He only knew
that all his former dread, uneasiness, distress, and with them this idea of
growth that had seemed so repugnant to him were merged, swept up, and gathered
magnificently home into a wave of beauty that enveloped him. "See it, and
understand," ran a secret inner whisper across his mind. He saw. He
understood....
He went back and turned
the lights out. Then he took his place again at that open window, drinking in
the night. He saw a new world; a species of intoxication held him. He sighed,
as his thoughts blundered for expression among words and sentences that knew
him not. But the delight was there, the wonder, the mystery. He watched with
heart alternately tightening and expanding the transfiguring play of moon and
shadow over the sea of buildings. He saw the dance of the hurrying clouds, the
open patches into outer space, the veiling and unveiling of that ancient silvery
face; and he caught strange whispers of the hierophantic, sacerdotal power that
has echoed down the world since Time began and dropped strange magic
phrases into every poet's heart, since first "God dawned on
Chaos"—the Beauty of the Night.
A long time passed—it
may have been one hour, it may have been three—when at length he turned away
and went slowly to his bedroom. A deep peace lay over him. Something quite new
and blessed had crept into his life and thought. He could not quite understand
it all. He only knew that it uplifted. There was no longer the least sign of
affliction or distress. Even the inevitable reaction that set in could not
destroy that.
And then as he lay in
bed nearing the borderland of sleep, suddenly and without any obvious suggestion
to bring it, he remembered another thing. He remembered the promise. Memory got
past the big curtain for an instant and showed her face. She looked into his
eyes. It must have been a dozen years ago when Straughan and he had made that
foolish solemn promise, that whoever died first should show himself if possible
to the other.
He had utterly forgotten
it—till now. But Straughan had not forgotten it. The letter came three weeks
later from India. That very evening Straughan had died—at nine o'clock. And he
had come back—in the Beauty that he loved.
3.THE SECOND GENERATION[3]
By
Algernon Blackwood
Sometimes, in a moment
of sharp experience, comes that vivid flash of insight that makes a platitude
suddenly seem a revelation—its full content is abruptly realized. "Ten
years is a long time, yes," he thought, as he walked up
the drive to the great Kensington house where she still lived.
Ten years—long enough, at
any rate, for her to have married and for her husband to have died. More than
that he had not heard, in the outlandish places where life had cast him in the
interval. He wondered whether there had been any children. All manner of
thoughts and questions, confused a little, passed across his mind. He was
well-to-do now, though probably his entire capital did not amount to her income
for a single year. He glanced at the huge, forbidding mansion. Yet that pride
was false which had made of poverty an insuperable obstacle. He saw it now. He
had learned values in his long exile.
But he was still
ridiculously timid. This confusion of thought, of mental images rather, was due
to a kind of fear, since worship ever is akin to awe. He was as nervous as a
boy going up for a viva voce; and with the excitement was also
that unconquerable sinking—that horrid shrinking sensation that excessive
shyness brings. Why in the world had he come? Why had he telegraphed the very
day after his arrival in England? Why had he not sent a tentative, tactful
letter, feeling his way a little?
Very slowly he walked up
the drive, feeling that if a reasonable chance of escape presented itself he
would almost take it. But all the windows stared so hard at him that retreat
was really impossible now and though no faces were visible behind the curtains,
all had seen him, possibly she herself—his heart beat absurdly at the
extravagant suggestion. Yet it was odd—he felt so certain of being seen, and
that someone watched him. He reached the wide stone steps that were clean as
marble, and shrank from the mark his boots must make upon their spotlessness.
In desperation, then, before he could change his mind, he touched the bell. But
he did not hear it ring—mercifully; that irrevocable sound must have paralyzed
him altogether. If no one came to answer, he might still leave a card in the
letter-box and slip away. Oh, how utterly he despised himself for such a
thought! A man of thirty with such a chicken heart was not fit to protect a
child, much less a woman. And he recalled with a little stab of pain that the
man she married had been noted for his courage, his determined action, his
inflexible firmness in various public situations, head and shoulders above
lesser men. What presumption on his own part ever to dream!... He remembered,
too, with no apparent reason in particular, that this man had a grown-up son
already, by a former marriage.
And still no one came to
open that huge, contemptuous door with its so menacing, so hostile air. His
back was to it, as he carelessly twirled his umbrella, but he felt its sneering
expression behind him while it looked him up and down. It seemed to push him
away. The entire mansion focused its message through that stern portal: Little
timid men are not welcomed here.
How well he remembered
the house! How often in years gone by had he not stood and waited just like
this, trembling with delight and anticipation, yet terrified lest the bell
should be answered and the great door actually swung wide! Then, as now, he
would have run, had he dared. He was still afraid—his worship was so deep. But
in all these years of exile in wild places, farming, mining, working for the
position he had at last attained, her face and the memory of her gracious
presence had been his comfort and support, his only consolation, though never
his actual joy. There was so little foundation for it all, yet her smile and
the words she had spoken to him from time to time in friendly conversation had
clung, inspired, kept him going—for he knew them all by heart. And more than
once in foolish optimistic moods, he had imagined, greatly daring, that she
possibly had meant more....
He touched the bell a
second time—with the point of his umbrella. He meant to go in, carelessly as it
were, saying as lightly as might be, "Oh, I'm back in England again—if you
haven't quite forgotten my existence—I could not forego the
pleasure of saying 'How-do-you-do?' and hearing that you are well ...,"
and the rest; then presently bow himself easily out—into the old loneliness
again. But he would at least have seen her; he would have heard her voice,
and looked into her gentle, amber eyes; he would have touched her hand. She
might even ask him to come in another day and see her! He had rehearsed it all
a hundred times, as certain feeble temperaments do rehearse such scenes. And he
came rather well out of that rehearsal, though always with an aching heart, the
old great yearnings unfulfilled. All the way across the Atlantic he had thought
about it, though with lessening confidence as the time drew near. The very
night of his arrival in London he wrote, then, tearing up the letter (after
sleeping over it), he had telegraphed next morning, asking if she would be in.
He signed his surname—such a very common name, alas! but surely she would
know—and her reply, "Please call 4:30," struck him as rather oddly
worded. Yet here he was.
There was a rattle of
the big door knob, that aggressive, hostile knob that thrust out at him
insolently like a fist of bronze. He started, angry with himself for doing so.
But the door did not open. He became suddenly conscious of the wilds he had
lived in for so long; his clothes were hardly fashionable; his voice probably
had a twang in it, and he used tricks of speech that must betray the rough life
so recently left. What would she think of him, now? He looked much older, too.
And how brusque it was to have telegraphed like that! He felt awkward, gauche,
tongue-tied, hot and cold by turns. The sentences, so carefully rehearsed, fled
beyond recovery.
Good heavens—the door
was open! It had been open for some minutes. It moved noiselessly on big
hinges. He acted automatically; he heard himself asking if her ladyship
was at home, though his voice was nearly inaudible. The next moment he was standing
in the great, dim hall, so poignantly familiar, and the remembered perfume
almost made him sway. He did not hear the door close, but he knew. He was
caught. The butler betrayed an instant's surprise—or was it over-wrought
imagination again?—when he gave his name. It seemed to him—though only later
did he grasp the significance of that curious intuition—that the man had
expected another caller instead. The man took his card respectfully and
disappeared. These flunkeys were so marvellously trained. He was too long
accustomed to straight question and straight answer, but here, in the Old
Country, privacy was jealously guarded with such careful ritual.
And almost immediately
the butler returned, still expressionless, and showed him into the large drawing-room
on the ground floor that he knew so well. Tea was on the table—tea for one. He
felt puzzled. "If you will have tea first, sir, her ladyship will see you
afterwards," was what he heard. And though his breath came thickly, he
asked the question that forced itself out. Before he knew what he was saying he
asked it, "Is she ill?" "Oh, no, her ladyship is quite well,
thank you, sir. If you will have tea first, sir, her ladyship will see you
afterwards." The horrid formula was repeated, word for word. He sank into
an armchair and mechanically poured out his own tea. What he felt he did not
exactly know. It seemed so unusual, so utterly unexpected, so unnecessary, too.
Was it a special attention, or was it merely casual? That it could mean
anything else did not occur to him. How was she busy, occupied—not here to
give him tea? He could not understand it. It seemed such a farce having tea
alone like this—it was like waiting for an audience, it was like a doctor's or
a dentist's room. He felt bewildered, ill at ease, cheap.... But after ten
years in primitive lands perhaps London usages had changed in some
extraordinary manner. He recalled his first amazement at the motor-omnibuses,
taxicabs, and electric tubes. All were new. London was otherwise than when he
left it. Piccadilly and the Marble Arch themselves had altered. And, with his
reflection, a shade more confidence stole in. She knew that he was there and
presently she would come in and speak with him, explaining everything by the
mere fact of her delicious presence. He was ready for the ordeal, he would see
her—and drop out again. It was worth all manner of pain, even of mortification.
He was in her house, drinking her tea, sitting in a chair she used herself
perhaps. Only he would never dare to say a word or make a sign that might
betray his changeless secret. He still felt the boyish worshipper, worshipping
in dumbness from a distance, one of a group of many others like himself. Their
dreams had faded, his had continued, that was the difference. Memories tore and
raced and poured upon him. How sweet and gentle she had always been to him! He
used to wonder sometimes.... Once, he remembered, he had rehearsed a
declaration, but while rehearsing the big man had come in and captured her,
though he had only read the definite news long after by chance in an Arizona
paper.
He gulped his tea down.
His heart alternately leaped and stood still. A sort of numbness held him most
of that dreadful interval, and no clear thought came at all. Every ten
seconds his head turned towards the door that rattled, seemed to move, yet
never opened. But any moment now it must open, and he would be
in her very presence, breathing the same air with her. He would see her, charge
himself with her beauty once more to the brim, and then go out again into the
wilderness—the wilderness of life—without her, and not for a mere ten years but
for always. She was so utterly beyond his reach. He felt like a backwoodsman,
he was a backwoodsman.
For one thing only was
he duly prepared, though he thought about it little enough—she would, of
course, have changed. The photograph he owned, cut from an illustrated paper,
was not true now. It might even be a little shock perhaps. He must remember
that. Ten years cannot pass over a woman without—
Before he knew it the
door was open, and she was advancing quietly towards him across the thick
carpet that deadened sound. With both hands outstretched she came, and with the
sweetest welcoming smile upon her parted lips he had seen in any human face. Her
eyes were soft with joy. His whole heart leaped within him; for the instant he
saw her it all flashed clear as sunlight—that she knew and understood. She had
always known, had always understood. Speech came easily to him in a flood, had
he needed it, but he did not need it. It was all so adorably easy, simple,
natural, and true. He just took her hands—those welcoming, outstretched
hands—in both of his own, and led her to the nearest sofa. He was not even
surprised at himself. Inevitably, out of depths of truth, this meeting came
about. And he uttered a little foolish commonplace, because he feared the huge
revulsion that his sudden glory brought, and loved to taste it slowly:
"So you live here
still?"
"Here, and
here," she answered softly, touching his heart, and then her own. "I
am attached to this house, too, because you used to come and
see me here, and because it was here I waited so long for you, and still wait.
I shall never leave it—unless you change. You see, we live together here."
He said nothing. He
leaned forward to take and hold her. The abrupt knowledge of it all somehow did
not seem abrupt—it was as though he had known it always; and the complete
disclosure did not seem disclosure either—rather as though she told him
something he had inexplicably left unrealized, yet not forgotten. He felt
absolutely master of himself, yet, in a curious sense, outside of himself at
the same time. His arms were already open—when she gently held her hands up to
prevent. He heard a faint sound outside the door.
"But you are
free," he cried, his great passion breaking out and flooding him, yet most
oddly well controlled, "and I—"
She interrupted him in
the softest, quietest whisper he had ever heard:
"You are not free,
as I am free—not yet."
The sound outside came
suddenly closer. It was a step. There was a faint click on the handle of the
door. In a flash, then, came the dreadful shock that overwhelmed him—the abrupt
realization of the truth that was somehow horrible—that Time, all these years,
had left no mark upon her and that she had not changed. Her
face was as young as when he saw her last.
With it there came cold
and darkness into the great room. He shivered with cold, but an alien,
unaccountable cold. Some great shadow dropped upon the entire earth, and though
but a second could have passed before the handle actually turned, and the other
person entered, it seemed to him like several minutes. He heard her saying this
amazing thing that was question, answer, and forgiveness all in one—this, at least,
he divined before the ghastly interruption came—"But, George—if you had
only spoken—!"
With ice in his blood he
heard the butler saying that her ladyship would be "pleased" to see
him if he had finished his tea and would be "so good as to bring the papers
and documents upstairs with him." He had just sufficient control of
certain muscles to stand upright and murmur that he would come. He rose from a
sofa that held no one but himself. All at once he staggered. He really did not
know exactly what happened, or how he managed to stammer out the medley of
excuses and semi-explanations that battered their way through his brain and
issued somehow in definite words from his lips. Somehow or other he
accomplished it. The sudden attack, the faintness, the collapse!... He vaguely
remembered afterwards—with amazement too—the suavity of the butler as he
suggested telephoning for a doctor, and that he just managed to forbid it,
refusing the offered glass of brandy as well, remembered contriving to stumble
into the taxicab and give his hotel address with a final explanation that he
would call another day and "bring the papers." It was quite
clear that his telegram had been attributed to someone else, someone "with
papers"—perhaps a solicitor or architect. His name was such an ordinary
one, there were so many Smiths. It was also clear that she whom he had come to
see and had seen, no longer lived here in the flesh....
And just as he left the
hall he had the vision—mere fleeting glimpse it was—of a tall, slim, girlish
figure on the stairs asking if anything was wrong, and realized vaguely through
his atrocious pain that she was, of course, the wife of the son who had
inherited....
By
Katherine Rickford
They were sitting round
the fire after dinner—not an ordinary fire—one of those fires that has a little
room all to itself with seats at each side of it to hold a couple of people or
three.
The big dining room was
paneled with oak. At the far end was a handsome dresser that dated back for
generations. One's imagination ran riot when one pictured the people who must
have laid those pewter plates on the long, narrow, solid table. Massive
medieval chests stood against the walls. Arms and parts of armor hung against
the panelling; but one noticed few of these things, for there was no light in
the room save what the fire gave.
It was Christmas Eve.
Games had been played. The old had vied with the young at snatching raisins
from the burning snapdragon. The children had long since gone to bed; it was
time their elders followed them, but they lingered round the fire, taking turns
at telling stories. Nothing very weird had been told; no one had felt any wish
to peep over his shoulder or try to penetrate the darkness of the far end of
the room; the omission caused a sensation of something wanting. From each one
there this thought went out, and so a sudden silence fell upon the party.
It was a girl who broke it—a mere child; she wore her hair up that night for
the first time, and that seemed to give her the right to sit up so late.
"Mr. Grady is going
to tell one," she said.
All eyes were turned to
a middle-aged man in a deep armchair placed straight in front of the fire. He
was short, inclined to be fat, with a bald head and a pointed beard like the
beards that sailors wear. It was plain that he was deeply conscious of the
sudden turning of so much strained yet forceful thought upon himself. He was
restless in his chair as people are in a room that is overheated. He blinked
his eyes as he looked round the company. His lips twitched in a nervous manner.
One side of him seemed to be endeavoring to restrain another side of him from a
feverish desire to speak.
"It was this room
that made me think of him," he said thoughtfully.
There was a long
silence, but it occurred to no one to prompt him. Every one seemed to
understand that he was going to speak, or rather that something inside him was
going to speak, some force that craved expression and was using him as a
medium.
The little old man's
pink face grew strangely calm, the animation that usually lit it was gone. One
would have said that the girl who had started him already regretted the
impulse, and now wanted to stop him. She was breathing heavily, and once or
twice made as though she would speak to him, but no words came. She must have
abandoned the idea, for she fell to studying the company. She examined them
carefully, one by one. "This one," she told herself, "is
so-and-so, and that one there just another so-and-so." She stared at
them, knowing that she could not turn them to herself with her stare. They were
just bodies kept working, so to speak, by some subtle sort of sentry left
behind by the real selves that streamed out in pent-up thought to the little
old man in the chair in front of the fire.
"His name was
Joseph; at least they called him Joseph. He dreamed, you understand—dreams. He
was an extraordinary lad in many ways. His mother—I knew her very well—had
three children in quick succession, soon after marriage; then ten years went by
and Joseph was born. Quiet and reserved he always was, a self-contained child
whose only friend was his mother. People said things about him, you know how
people talk. Some said he was not Clara's child at all, but that she had
adopted him; others, that her husband was not his father, and these put her
change of manner down to a perpetual struggle to keep her husband comfortably
in the dark. I always imagined that the boy was in some way aware of all this
gossip, for I noticed that he took a dislike to the people who spread it
most."
The little man rested
his elbows on the arms of his chair and let the tips of his fingers meet in
front of him. A smile played about his mouth. He seemed to be searching among
his reminiscences for the one that would give the clearest portrait of Joseph.
"Well,
anyway," he said at last, "the boy was odd, there is no gainsaying
the fact. I suppose he was eleven when Clara came down here with her family for
Christmas. The Coningtons owned the place then—Mrs. Conington was Clara's
sister. It was Christmas Eve, as it is now, many years ago. We had spent a
normal Christmas Eve; a little happier, perhaps, than usual by reason of the
family re-union and because of the presence of so many children. We had eaten
and drank, laughed and played and gone to bed.
"I woke in the
middle of the night from sheer restlessness. Clara, knowing my weakness, had
given me a fire in my room. I lit a cigarette, played with a book, and then,
purely from curiosity, opened the door and looked down the passage. From my
door I could see the head of the staircase in the distance; the opposite wing
of the house, or the passage rather beyond the stairs, was in darkness. The
reason I saw the staircase at all was that the window you pass coming
downstairs allowed the moon to throw an uncertain light upon it, a weird light
because of the stained glass. I was arrested by the curious effect of this
patch of light in so much darkness when suddenly someone came into it, turned,
and went downstairs. It was just like a scene in a theater; something was about
to happen that I was going to miss. I ran as I was, barefooted, to the head of
the stairs and looked over the banister. I was excited, strung up, too strung
up to feel the fright that I knew must be with me. I remember the sensation
perfectly. I knew that I was afraid, yet I did not feel fright.
"On the stairs
nothing moved. The little hall down here was lost in darkness. Looking over the
banister I was facing the stained glass window. You know how the stairs run
around three sides of the hall; well, it occurred to me that if I went halfway
down and stood under the window I should be able to keep the top of the
stairs in sight and see anything that might happen in the hall. I crept down
very cautiously and waited under the window. First of all, I saw the suit of
empty armor just outside the door here. You know how a thing like that, if you
stare at it in a poor light, appears to move; well, it moved sure enough, and
the illusion was enhanced by clouds being blown across the moon. By the fire
like this one can talk of these things rationally, but in the dead of night it
is a different matter, so I went down a few steps to make sure of that armor,
when suddenly something passed me on the stairs. I did not hear it, I did not
see it, I sensed it in no way, I just knew that something had passed me on its
way upstairs. I realized that my retreat was cut off, and with the knowledge
fear came upon me.
"I had seen someone
come down the stairs; that, at any rate, was definite; now I wanted to see him
again. Any ghost is bad enough, but a ghost that one can see is better than one
that one can't. I managed to get past the suit of armor, but then I had to feel
my way to these double doors here."
He indicated the
direction of the doors by a curious wave of his hand. He did not look toward
them nor did any of the party. Both men and women were completely absorbed in
his story; they seemed to be mesmerized by the earnestness of his manner. Only
the girl was restless; she gave an impression of impatience with the slowness
with which he came to his point. One would have said that she was apart from
her fellows, an alien among strangers.
"So dense was the
darkness that I made sure of finding the first door closed, but it was not, it
was wide open, and, standing between them, I could feel that the other was
open, too. I was standing literally in the wall of the house, and as I peered
into the room, trying to make out some familiar object, thoughts ran through my
mind of people who had been bricked up in walls and left there to die. For a
moment I caught the spirit of the inside of a thick wall. Then suddenly I felt
the sensation I have often read about but never experienced before: I knew
there was some one in the room. You are surprised, yes, but wait! I knew more:
I knew that some one was conscious of my presence. It occurred to me that
whoever it was might want to get out of the door. I made room for him to pass.
I waited for him, made sure of him, began to feel giddy, and then a man's voice,
deep and clear:
"'There is some one
there; who is it?'
"I answered
mechanically, 'George Grady.'
"'I'm Joseph.'
"A match was drawn
across a matchbox, and I saw the boy bending over a candle waiting for the wick
to catch. For a moment I thought he must be walking in his sleep, but he turned
to me quite naturally and said in his own boyish voice:
"'Lost anything?'
"I was amazed at
the lad's complete calm. I wanted to share my fright with some one, instead I
had to hide it from this boy. I was conscious of a curious sense of shame. I
had watched him grow, taught him, praised him, scolded him, and yet here he was
waiting for an explanation of my presence in the dining room at that odd hour
of the night.
"Soon he repeated
the question, 'Lost anything?'
"'No,' I said, and
then I stammered, 'Have you?'
"'No,' he said with
a little laugh. 'It's that room, I can't sleep in it.'
"'Oh,' I said.
'What's the matter with the room?'
"'It's the room I
was killed in,' he said quite simply.
"Of course I had
heard about his dreams, but I had had no direct experience of them; when,
therefore, he said that he had been killed in his room I took it for granted
that he had been dreaming again. I was at a loss to know quite how to tackle
him; whether to treat the whole thing as absurd and laugh it off as such, or
whether to humor him and hear his story. I got him upstairs to my room, sat him
in a big armchair, and poked the fire into a blaze.
"'You've been
dreaming again,' I said bluntly.
"'Oh, no I haven't.
Don't you run away with that idea.'
"His whole manner
was so grown up that it was quite unthinkable to treat him as the child he
really was. In fact, it was a little uncanny, this man in a child's frame.
"'I was killed
there,' he said again.
"'How do you mean,
killed?' I asked him.
"'Why,
killed—murdered. Of course it was years and years ago, I can't say when; still
I remember the room. I suppose it was the room that reminded me of the
incident.'
"'Incident?' I
exclaimed.
"'What else? Being
killed is only an incident in the existence of any one. One makes a fuss about
it at the time, of course, but really when you come to think of it....'
"'Tell me about
it,' I said, lighting a cigarette. He lit one too, that child, and began.
"'You know my room
is the only modern one in this old house. Nobody knows why it is modern. The
reason is obvious. Of course it was made modern after I was killed there. The
funny thing is that I should have been put there. I suppose it was done for a
purpose, because I—I——'
"He looked at me so
fixedly I knew he would catch me if I lied.
"'What?' I asked.
"'Dream.'
"'Yes,' I said,
'that is why you were put there.'
"'I thought so, and
yet of all the rooms—but then, of course, no one knew. Anyhow I did not
recognize the room until after I was in bed. I had been asleep some time and
then I woke suddenly. There is an old wheel-back chair there—the only old thing
in the room. It is standing facing the fire as it must have stood the night I
was killed. The fire was burning brightly, the pattern of the back of the chair
was thrown in shadow across the ceiling. Now the night I was murdered the
conditions were exactly the same, so directly I saw that pattern on the ceiling
I remembered the whole thing. I was not dreaming, don't think it, I was not.
What happened that night was this: I was lying in bed counting the parts of the
back of that chair in shadow on the ceiling. I probably could not get to sleep,
you know the sort of thing, count up to a thousand and remember in the morning
where you got to. Well, I was counting those pieces when suddenly they were all
obliterated, the whole back became a shadow, some one was sitting in the
chair. Now, surely, you understand that directly I saw the shadow of that chair
on the ceiling to-night I realized that I had not a moment to lose. At any
moment that same person might come back to that same chair and escape would be
impossible. I slipped from my bed as quickly as I could and ran downstairs.'
"'But were you not
afraid,' I asked, 'downstairs?'
"'That she might
follow me? It was a woman, you know. No, I don't think I was. She does not
belong downstairs. Anyhow she didn't.'
"'No,' I said.
'No.'
"My voice must have
been out of control, for he caught me up at once.
"'You don't mean to
say you saw her?' he said vehemently.
"'Oh, no.'
"'You felt her?'
"'She passed me as
I came downstairs,' I said.
"'What can I have
done to her that she follows me so?' He buried his face in his hands as though
searching for an answer to his thought. Suddenly he looked up and stared at me.
"'Where had I got
to? Oh yes, the murder. I can remember how startled I was to see that shadow in
the chair—startled, you know, but not really frightened. I leaned up in bed and
looked at the chair, and sure enough a woman was sitting in it—a young woman. I
watched her with a profound interest until she began to turn in her chair, as I
felt, to look at me; when she did that I shrank back in bed. I dared not meet
her eyes. She might not have had eyes, she might not have had a face. You know
the sort of pictures that one sees when one glances back at all one's soul
has ever thought.
"'I got back in the
bed as far as I could and peeped over the sheets at the shadow on the ceiling.
I was tired; frightened to death; I grew weary of watching. I must have fallen
asleep, for suddenly the fire was almost out, the pattern of the chair barely
discernible, the shadow had gone. I raised myself with a sense of huge relief.
Yes, the chair was empty, but, just think of it, the woman was on the floor, on
her hands and knees, crawling toward the bed.
"'I fell back
stricken with terror.
"'Very soon I felt
a gentle pull at the counterpane. I thought I was in a nightmare but too lazy
or too comfortable to try to wake myself from it. I waited in an agony of
suspense, but nothing seemed to be happening, in fact I had just persuaded
myself that the movement of the counterpane was fancy when a hand brushed
softly over my knee. There was no mistaking it, I could feel the long, thin
fingers. Now was the time to do something. I tried to rouse myself, but all my
efforts were futile, I was stiff from head to foot.
"'Although the hand
was lost to me, outwardly, it now came within my range of knowledge, if you
know what I mean. I knew that it was groping its way along the bed feeling for
some other part of me. At any moment I could have said exactly where it had got
to. When it was hovering just over my chest another hand knocked lightly
against my shoulder. I fancied it lost, and wandering in search of its fellow.
"'I was lying on my
back staring at the ceiling when the hands met; the weight of their presence
brought a feeling of oppression to my chest. I seemed to be completely cut
off from my body; I had no sort of connection with any part of it, nothing
about me would respond to my will to make it move.
"'There was no
sound at all anywhere.
"'I fell into a
state of indifference, a sort of patient indifference that can wait for an
appointed time to come. How long I waited I cannot say, but when the time came
it found me ready. I was not taken by surprise.
"'There was a great
upward rush of pent-up force released; it was like a mighty mass of men who
have been lost in prayer rising to their feet. I can't remember clearly, but I
think the woman must have got on to my bed. I could not follow her distinctly,
my whole attention was concentrated on her hands. At the time I felt those
fingers itching for my throat.
"'At last they
moved; slowly at first, then quicker; and then a long-drawn swish like the
sound of an over-bold wave that has broken too far up the beach and is sweeping
back to join the sea.'
"The boy was silent
for a moment, then he stretched out his hand for the cigarettes.
"'You remember
nothing else?' I asked him.
"'No,' he said.
'The next thing I remember clearly is deliberately breaking the nursery window
because it was raining and mother would not let me go out.'"
There was a moment's
tension, then the strain of listening passed and every one seemed to be
speaking at once. The Rector was taking the story seriously.
"Tell me,
Grady," he said. "How long do you suppose elapsed between the boy's
murder and his breaking the nursery window?"
But a young married
woman in the first flush of her happiness broke in between them. She
ridiculed the whole idea. Of course the boy was dreaming. She was drawing the
majority to her way of thinking when, from the corner where the girl sat, a
hollow-sounding voice:
"And the boy? Where
is he?"
The tone of the girl's
voice inspired horror, that fear that does not know what it is it fears; one
could see it on every face; on every face, that is, but the face of the
bald-headed little man; there was no horror on his face; he was smiling
serenely as he looked the girl straight in the eyes.
"He's a man
now," he said.
"Alive?" she
cried.
"Why not?"
said the little old man, rubbing his hands together.
She tried to rise, but
her frock had got caught between the chairs and pulled her to her seat again.
The man next her put out his hand to steady her, but she dashed it away
roughly. She looked round the party for an instant for all the world like an
animal at bay, then she sprang to her feet and charged blindly. They crowded
round her to prevent her falling; at the touch of their hands she stopped. She
was out of breath as though she had been running.
"All right,"
she said, pushing their hands from her. "All right. I'll come quietly. I
did it."
They caught her as she
fell and laid her on the sofa watching the color fade from her face.
The hostess, an old
woman with white hair and a kind face, approached the little old man; for once
in her life she was roused to anger.
"I can't think how
you could be so stupid," she said. "See what you have done."
"I did it for a
purpose," he said.
"For a
purpose?"
"I have always
thought that girl was the culprit. I have to thank you for the opportunity you
have given me of making sure."
5.THE CLAVECIN, BRUGES[4]
By
George Wharton Edwards
A silent, grass-grown
market-place, upon the uneven stones of which the sabots of a passing peasant
clatter loudly. A group of sleepy-looking soldiers in red trousers lolling
about the wide portal of the Belfry, which rears aloft against the pearly sky
All the height it hasOf
ancient stone.
As the chime ceases
there lingers for a space a faint musical hum in the air; the stones seem to
carry and retain the melody; one is loath to move for fear of losing some part
of the harmony.
I feel an indescribable
impulse to climb the four hundred odd steps; incomprehensible, for I detest
steeple-climbing, and have no patience with steeple-climbers.
Before I realize it, I
am at the stairs. "Hold, sir!" from behind me. "It is
forbidden." In wretched French a weazen-faced little soldier explains that
repairs are about to be made in the tower, in consequence of which visitors are
forbidden. A franc removes this military obstacle, and I press on.
At the top of the stairs
is an old Flemish woman shelling peas, while over her shoulder peeps a tame
magpie. A savory odor of stewing vegetables fills the air.
"What do you wish,
sir?" Many shrugs, gesticulations, and sighs of objurgation, which are
covered by a shining new five-franc piece, and she produces a bunch of keys. As
the door closes upon me the magpie gives a hoarse, gleeful squawk.
... A huge, dim room
with a vaulted ceiling. Against the wall lean ancient stone statues, noseless
and disfigured, crowned and sceptered effigies of forgotten lords and ladies of
Flanders. High up on the wall two slitted Gothic windows, through which the
violet light of day is streaming. I hear the gentle coo of pigeons. To the
right a low door, some vanishing steps of stone, and a hanging hand-rope.
Before I have taken a dozen steps upward I am lost in the darkness; the steps
are worn hollow and sloping, the rope is slippery—seems to have been waxed, so
smooth has it become by handling. Four hundred steps and over; I have lost
track of the number, and stumble giddily upward round and round the slender
stone shaft. I am conscious of low openings from time to time—openings to what?
I do not know. A damp smell exhales from them, and the air is cold upon my face
as I pass them. At last a dim light above. With the next turn a blinding glare
of light, a moment's blankness, then a vast panorama gradually dawns upon me.
Through the frame of stonework is a vast reach of grayish green bounded by the
horizon, an immense shield embossed with silvery lines of waterways, and
studded with clustering red-tiled roofs. A rim of pale yellow appears—the
sand-dunes that line the coast—and dimly beyond a grayish film, evanescent,
flashing—the North Sea.
Something flies through
the slit from which I am gazing, and following its flight upward, I see a
long beam crossing the gallery, whereon are perched an array of jackdaws gazing
down upon me in wonder.
I am conscious of a
rhythmic movement about me that stirs the air, a mysterious, beating, throbbing
sound, the machinery of the clock, which some one has described as a
"heart of iron beating in a breast of stone."
I lean idly in the
narrow slit, gazing at the softened landscape, the exquisite harmony of the
greens, grays, and browns, the lazily turning arms of far-off mills, reminders
of Cuyp, Van der Velde, Teniers, shadowy, mysterious recollections. I am
conscious of uttering aloud some commonplaces of delight. A slight and sudden
movement behind me, a smothered cough. A little old man in a black velvet coat
stands looking up at me, twisting and untwisting his hands. There are ruffles
at his throat and wrists, and an amused smile spreads over his face, which is
cleanly shaven, of the color of wax, with a tiny network of red lines over the
cheek-bones, as if the blood had been forced there by some excess of passion
and had remained. He has heard my sentimental ejaculation. I am conscious of
the absurdity of the situation, and move aside for him to pass. He makes a
courteous gesture with one ruffled hand.
There comes a prodigious
rattling and grinding noise from above—then a jangle of bells, some half-dozen
notes in all. At the first stroke the old man closes his eyes, throws back his
head, and follows the rhythm with his long white hands, as though playing a
piano. The sound dies away; the place becomes painfully silent; still the regular
motion of the old man's hands continues. A creepy, shivery feeling runs up and
down my spine; a fear of which I am ashamed seizes upon me.
"Fine pells,
sare," says the little old man, suddenly dropping his hands, and fixing
his eyes upon me. "You sall not hear such pells in your countree. But stay
not here; come wis me, and I will show you the clavecin. You sall not see the
clavecin yet? No?"
I had not, of course,
and thanked him.
"You sall see
Melchior, Melchior t'e Groote, t'e magnif'."
As he spoke we entered a
room quite filled with curious machinery, a medley of levers, wires, and rope
above; below, two large cylinders studded with shining brass points.
He sprang among the
wires with a spidery sort of agility, caught one, pulled and hung upon it with,
all his weight. There came a r-r-r-r-r-r of fans and wheels, followed by a
shower of dust; slowly one great cylinder began to revolve; wires and ropes
reaching into the gloom above began to twitch convulsively; faintly came the
jangle of far-off bells. Then came a pause, then a deafening boom,
that well nigh stunned me. As the waves of sound came and went, the little old
man twisted and untwisted his hands in delight, and ejaculated, "Melchior
you haf heeard, Melchior t'e Groote—t'e bourdon."
I wanted to examine the
machinery, but he impatiently seized my arm and almost dragged me away saying,
"I will skow you—I will skow you. Come wis me."
From a pocket he
produced a long brass key and unlocked a door covered with red leather,
disclosing an up-leading flight of steps to which he pushed me. It gave upon
an octagon-shaped room with a curious floor of sheet-lead. Around the wall ran
a seat under the diamond-paned Gothic windows. From their shape I knew them to
be the highest in the tower. I had seen them from the square below many times,
with the framework above upon which hung row upon row of bells.
In the middle of the
room was a rude sort of keyboard, with pedals below, like those of a large
organ. Fronting this construction sat a long, high-backed bench. On the rack
over the keyboard rested some sheets of music, which, upon examination, I found
to be of parchment and written by hand. The notes were curious in shape,
consisting of squares of black and diamonds of red upon the lines. Across the
top of the page was written, in a straggling hand, "Van den Gheyn
Nikolaas." I turned to the little old man with the ruffles. "Van den
Gheyn!" I said in surprise, pointing to the parchment. "Why, that is
the name of the most celebrated of carillonneurs, Van den Gheyn of
Louvain." He untwisted his hands and bowed. "Eet ees ma name,
mynheer—I am the carillonneur."
I fancied that my face
showed all too plainly the incredulity I felt, for his darkened, and he
muttered, "You not belief, Engelsch? Ah, I show you; then you belief,
parehap," and with astounding agility seated himself upon the bench before
the clavecin, turned up the ruffles at his wrists, and literally threw himself
upon the keys. A sound of thunder accompanied by a vivid flash of lightning
filled the air, even as the first notes of the bells reached my ears.
Involuntarily I glanced out of the diamond-leaded window—dark clouds were all
about us, the housetops and surrounding country were no longer to be seen.
A blinding flash of lightning seemed to fill the room; the arms and legs of the
little old man sought the keys and pedals with inconceivable rapidity; the
music crashed about us with a deafening din, to the accompaniment of the
thunder, which seemed to sound in unison with the boom of the bourdon. It was
grandly terrible. The face of the little old man was turned upon me, but his
eyes were closed. He seemed to find the pedals intuitively, and at every peal
of thunder, which shook the tower to its foundations, he would open his mouth,
a toothless cavern, and shout aloud. I could not hear the sounds for the
crashing of the bells. Finally, with a last deafening crash of iron rods and
thunderbolts, the noise of the bells gradually died away. Instinctively I had
glanced above when the crash came, half expecting to see the roof torn off.
"I think we had
better go down," I said. "This tower has been struck by lightning
several times, and I imagine that discretion—"
I don't know what more I
said, for my eyes rested upon the empty bench, and the bare rack where the
music had been. The clavecin was one mass of twisted iron rods, tangled wires,
and decayed, worm-eaten woodwork; the little old man had disappeared. I rushed
to the red leather-covered door; it was fast. I shook it in a veritable terror;
it would not yield. With a bound I reached the ruined clavecin, seized one of
the pedals, and tore it away from the machine. The end was armed with an iron
point. This I inserted between the lock and the door. I twisted the lock from
the worm-eaten wood with one turn of the wrist, the door opened, and I almost
fell down the steep steps. The second door at the bottom was also closed.
I threw my weight against it once, twice; it gave, and I half slipped, half ran
down the winding steps in the darkness.
Out at last into the
fresh air of the lower passage! At the noise I made in closing the ponderous
door came forth the old custode.
In my excitement I
seized her by the arm, saying, "Who was the little old man in the black
velvet coat with the ruffles? Where is he?"
She looked at me in a
stupid manner. "Who is he," I repeated—"the little old man who
played the clavecin?"
"Little old man,
sir? I don't know," said the crone. "There has been no one in the
tower to-day but yourself."
By
Edgar Allan Poe
"And the will
therein lieth, which dieth not. Who knoweth the mysteries of the will, with its
vigor? For God is but a great will prevading all things by nature of its
intentness. Man doth not yield himself to the angels, nor unto death utterly, save
only through the weakness of his feeble will."—Joseph Glanvill.
I cannot, for my soul,
remember how, when, or even precisely where, I first became acquainted with the
lady Ligeia. Long years have since elapsed, and my memory is feeble through
much suffering. Or, perhaps, I cannot now bring these points
to mind, because, in truth, the character of my beloved, her rare learning, her
singular yet placid caste of beauty, and the thrilling and enthralling
eloquence of her low musical language, made their way into my heart by paces so
steadily and stealthily progressive, that they have been unnoticed and unknown.
Yet I believe that I met her first and most frequently in some large, old,
decaying city near the Rhine. Of her family I have surely heard her speak. That
it is of a remotely ancient date cannot be doubted. Ligeia! Ligeia! Buried in
studies of a nature more than all else adapted to deaden impressions of the
outward world, it is by that sweet word alone—by Ligeia—that I bring before
mine eyes in fancy the image of her who is no more. And now, while I
write, a recollection flashes upon me that I have never known the
paternal name of her who was my friend and my betrothed, and who became the
partner of my studies, and finally the wife of my bosom. Was it a playful
charge on the part of my Ligeia? Or was it a test of my strength of affection,
that I should institute no inquiries upon this point? Or was it rather a
caprice of my own—a wildly romantic offering on the shrine of the most
passionate devotion? I but indistinctly recall the fact itself—what wonder that
I have utterly forgotten the circumstances which originated or attended it?
And, indeed, if ever that spirit which is entitled Romance—if ever she, the wan
and the misty-winged Ashtophet of idolatrous Egypt—presided, as they tell, over
marriages ill-omened, then most surely she presided over mine.
There is one dear topic,
however, on which my memory fails me not. It is the person of
Ligeia. In stature she was tall, somewhat slender, and, in her latter days,
even emaciated. I would in vain attempt to portray the majesty, the quiet ease
of her demeanor, or the incomprehensible lightness and elasticity of her
footfall. She came and departed as a shadow. I was never made aware of her
entrance into my closed study, save by the dear music of her low sweet voice,
as she placed her marble hand upon my shoulder. In beauty of face no maiden
ever equalled her. It was the radiance of an opium-dream—an airy and
spirit-lifting vision more wildly divine than the fantasies which hovered about
the slumbering souls of the daughters of Delos. Yet her features were not of
that regular mould which we have been falsely taught to worship in the
classical labors of the heathen. "There is no exquisite beauty,"
says Bacon, Lord Verulam, speaking truly of all the forms and genera of
beauty, "without some strangeness in the proportion." Yet, although I
saw that the features of Ligeia were not of a classic regularity—although I
perceived that her loveliness was indeed exquisite and felt that there was much
of strangeness pervading it—yet I have tried in vain to detect the irregularity
and to trace home my own perception of "the strange." I examined the
contour of the lofty and pale forehead; it was faultless—how cold indeed that
word when applied to a majesty so divine—the skin rivalling the purest ivory;
the commanding extent and repose, the gentle prominence of the regions above
the temples; and then the raven-black, the glossy, the luxuriant and
naturally-curling tresses, setting forth the full force of the Homeric epithet,
"hyacinthine"! I looked at the delicate outlines of the nose, and
nowhere but in the graceful medallions of the Hebrews had I beheld a similar
perfection. There were the same luxurious smoothness of surface, the same
scarcely perceptible tendency to the aquiline, the same harmoniously curved
nostrils speaking the free spirit. I regarded the sweet mouth. Here was indeed
the triumph of all things heavenly—the magnificent turn of the short upper lip,
the soft, voluptuous slumber of the under, the dimples which sported, and the
color which spoke, the teeth glancing back, with a brilliancy almost startling,
every ray of the holy light which fell upon them in her serene and placid, yet
most exultingly radiant of all smiles. I scrutinized the formation of the chin,
and here, too, I found the gentleness of breadth, the softness and the
majesty, the fulness and the spirituality of the Greek—the contour which the
god Apollo revealed but in a dream, to Cleomenes, the son of the Athenian. And
then I peered into the large eyes of Ligeia.
For eyes we have no
models in the remotely antique. It might have been, too, that in these eyes of
my beloved lay the secret to which Lord Verulam alludes. They were, I must believe,
far larger than the ordinary eyes of our own race. They were even fuller than
the fullest of the gazelle eyes of the tribe of the valley of Nourjahad. Yet it
was only at intervals—in moments of intense excitement—that this peculiarity
became more than slightly noticeable in Ligeia. And at such moments was her
beauty—in my heated fancy thus it appeared perhaps—the beauty of beings either
above or apart from the earth—the beauty of the fabulous Houri of the Turk. The
hue of the orbs was the most brilliant of black, and far over them hung jetty
lashes of great length. The brows, slightly irregular in outline, had the same
tint. The "strangeness," however, which I found in the eyes, was of a
nature distinct from the formation, or the color, or the brilliancy of the
features, and must, after all, be referred to the expression. Ah, word of no
meaning, behind whose vast latitude of mere sound we intrench our ignorance of
so much of the spiritual! The expression of the eyes of Ligeia! How for long
hours have I pondered upon it! How have I, through the whole of a midsummer
night, struggled to fathom it! What was it—that something more profound than
the well of Democritus—which lay far within the pupils of my beloved?
What was it? I was possessed with a passion to discover. Those
eyes, those large, those shining, those divine orbs—they became to me twin
stars of Leda, and I to them devoutest of astrologers.
There is no point, among
the many incomprehensible anomalies of the science of mind, more thrillingly
exciting than the fact—never, I believe, noticed in the schools—that in our
endeavors to recall to memory something long forgotten, we often find ourselves
upon the very verge of remembrance, without being able, in the end, to
remember. And thus how frequently, in my intense scrutiny of Ligeia's eyes,
have I felt approaching the full knowledge of their expression—felt it
approaching, yet not quite be mine—and so at length entirely depart! And
(strange, oh strangest mystery of all!) I found in the commonest objects of the
universe, a circle of analogies to that expression. I mean to say that,
subsequently to the period when Ligeia's beauty passed into my spirit, there
dwelling as in a shrine, I derived from many existences in the material world a
sentiment such as I felt always around, within me, by her large and luminous
orbs. Yet not the more could I define that sentiment, or analyze, or even
steadily view it. I recognized it, let me repeat, sometimes in the survey of a
rapidly-growing vine, in the contemplation of a moth, a butterfly, a chrysalis,
a stream of running water. I have felt it in the ocean, in the falling of a
meteor. I have felt it in the glances of unusually aged people. And there are
one or two stars in heaven, (one especially, a star of the sixth magnitude,
double and changeable, to be found near the large star in Lyra) in a telescopic
scrutiny of which I have been made aware of the feeling. I have been filled
with it by certain sounds from stringed instruments, and not unfrequently
by passages from books. Among innumerable other instances, I well remember
something in a volume of Joseph Glanvill, which (perhaps merely from its
quaintness—who shall say?) never failed to inspire me with the sentiment:
"And the will therein lieth, which dieth not. Who knoweth the mysteries of
the will, with its vigor? For God is but a great will pervading all things by
nature of its intentness. Man doth not yield him to the angels, nor unto death
utterly, save only through the weakness of his feeble will."
Length of years and
subsequent reflection have enabled me to trace, indeed, some remote connection
between this passage in the English moralist and a portion of the character of
Ligeia. An intensity in thought, action, or speech was possibly, in her, a result
or at least an index of that gigantic volition which, during our long
intercourse, failed to give other and more immediate evidence of its existence.
Of all the women whom I have ever known, she—the outwardly calm, the
ever-placid Ligeia—was the most violently a prey to the tumultuous vultures of
stern passion. And of such passion I could form no estimate, save by the
miraculous expansion of those eyes which at once so delighted and appalled me,
by the almost magical melody, modulation, distinctness, and placidity of her
very low voice, and by the fierce energy (rendered doubly effective by contrast
with her manner of utterance) of the wild words which she habitually uttered.
I have spoken of the
learning of Ligeia; it was immense, such as I have never known in woman. In the
classical tongues was she deeply proficient, and as far as my own
acquaintance extended in regard to the modern dialects of Europe, I have never
known her at fault. Indeed upon any theme of the most admired, because simply
the most abstruse of the boasted erudition of the academy, have I ever found
Ligeia at fault? How singularly, how thrillingly, this one point in the nature
of my wife has forced itself, at this late period only, upon my attention! I
said her knowledge was such as I have never known in woman—but where breathes
the man who has traversed, and successfully, all the wide areas of moral,
physical, and mathematical science? I saw not then what I now clearly perceive,
that the acquisitions of Ligeia were gigantic, were astounding; yet I was
sufficiently aware of her infinite supremacy to resign myself, with a
child-like confidence, to her guidance through the chaotic world of
metaphysical investigation at which I was most busily occupied during the
earlier years of our marriage. With how vast a triumph, with how vivid a
delight, with how much of all that is ethereal in hope, did I feel, as she bent
over me in studies but little sought—but less known—that delicious vista by
slow degrees expanding before me, down whose long, gorgeous, and all untrodden
path I might at length pass onward to the goal of a wisdom too divinely
precious not to be forbidden!
How poignant, then, must
have been the grief with which, after some years, I beheld my well-grounded
expectations take wings to themselves and fly away! Without Ligeia I was but as
a child groping benighted. Her presence, her readings alone, rendered vividly
luminous the many mysteries of the transcendentalism in which we were immersed.
Wanting the radiant luster of her eyes, letters, lambent and golden, grew
duller than Saturnian lead. And now those eyes shone less and less frequently
upon the pages over which I pored. Ligeia grew ill. The wild eyes blazed with a
too, too glorious effulgence; the pale fingers became of the transparent waxen
hue of the grave; and the blue veins upon the lofty forehead swelled and sank
impetuously with the tides of the most gentle emotion. I saw that she must
die—and I struggled desperately in spirit with the grim Azrael. And the struggles
of the passionate wife were, to my astonishment, even more energetic than my
own. There had been much in her stern nature to impress me with the belief
that, to her, death would have come without its terrors; but not so. Words are
impotent to convey any just idea of the fierceness of resistance with which she
wrestled with the Shadow. I groaned in anguish at the pitiable spectacle. I
would have soothed, I would have reasoned, but, in the intensity of her wild
desire for life—for life—but for life—solace and reason were alike
the uttermost of folly. Yet not until the last instance, amid the most
convulsive writhings of her fierce spirit, was shaken the external placidity of
her demeanor. Her voice grew more gentle—grew more low—yet I would not wish to
dwell upon the wild meaning of the quietly uttered words. My brain reeled as I
hearkened, entranced, to a melody more than mortal, to assumptions and
aspirations which mortality had never before known.
That she loved me I
should not have doubted, and I might have been easily aware that, in a bosom
such as hers, love would have reigned no ordinary passion. But in death only
was I fully impressed with the strength of her affection. For long hours,
detaining my hand, would she pour out before me the overflowing of a heart
whose more than passionate devotion amounted to idolatry. How had I deserved to
be so blessed by such confessions? How had I deserved to be so cursed with the
removal of my beloved in the hour of her making them? But upon this subject I
cannot bear to dilate. Let me say only, that in Ligeia's more than womanly
abandonment to a love, alas! all unmerited, all unworthily bestowed, I at
length recognized the principle of her longing, with so wildly earnest a
desire, for the life which was now fleeing so rapidly away. It is this wild
longing—it is this eager vehemence of desire for life—but for life—that I have
no power to portray, no utterance capable of expressing.
At high noon of the
night in which she departed, beckoning me peremptorily to her side, she bade me
repeat certain verses composed by herself not many days before. I obeyed her.
They were these:
Lo! 'tis a gala
nightWithin the lonesome latter years!An angel throng, bewinged, bedightIn
veils, and drowned in tears,Sit in a theater, to seeA play of hopes and
fears,While the orchestra breathes fitfullyThe music of the spheres.
Mimes, in the form of
God on high,Mutter and mumble low,And hither and thither fly;Mere puppets they,
who come and go At bidding of vast formless thingsThat shift the scenery to and
fro,Flapping from out their condor wingsInvisible Woe!
That motley drama!—oh,
be sureIt shall not be forgot!With its Phantom chased for evermore,By a crowd
that seize it not,Through a circle that ever returneth inTo the self-same spot;And
much of Madness, and more of SinAnd Horror, the soul of the plot!
But see, amid the mimic
routA crawling shape intrude!A blood-red thing that writhes from outThe scenic
solitude!It writhes!—it writhes!—with mortalThe mimes become its food,And the
seraphs sob at vermin fangsIn human gore imbued.
Out—out are the
lights—out all!And over each quivering form,The curtain, a funeral pall,Comes
down with the rush of a storm—And the angels, all pallid and wan,Uprising,
unveiling, affirmThat the play is the tragedy, "Man,"And its hero,
the Conqueror Worm.
"O God!"
half-shrieked Ligeia, leaping to her feet and extending her arms aloft with a
spasmodic movement, as I made an end of these lines, "O God! O Divine
Father! Shall these things be undeviatingly so? Shall this conqueror be not
once conquered? Are we not part and parcel in Thee? Who—who knoweth the
mysteries of the will with its vigor? Man doth not yield him to the
angels, nor unto death utterly, save only through the weakness of
his feeble will."
And now, as if exhausted
with emotion, she suffered her white arms to fall, and returned solemnly to her
bed of death. And as she breathed her last sighs, there came mingled with them
a low murmur from her lips. I bent to them my ear, and distinguished again, the
concluding words of the passage in Glanvill: "Man doth not yield him to
the angels, nor unto death utterly, save only through the weakness of his
feeble will."
She died, and I, crushed
into the very dust with sorrow, could no longer endure the lonely desolation of
my dwelling in the dim and decaying city by the Rhine. I had no lack of what
the world calls wealth. Ligeia had brought me far more, very far more than
ordinarily falls to the lot of mortals. After a few months, therefore, of weary
and aimless wandering, I purchased and put in some repair an abbey which I
shall not name in one of the wildest and least frequented portions of fair
England. The gloomy and dreary grandeur of the building, the almost savage
aspect of the domain, the many melancholy and time-honored memories connected
with both, had much in unison with the feelings of utter abandonment which had
driven me into that remote and unsocial region of the country. Yet, although
the external abbey with its verdant decay hanging about it suffered but
little alteration, I gave way with a child-like perversity, and perchance with
a faint hope of alleviating my sorrows, to a display of more than regal
magnificence within. For such follies, even in childhood, I had imbibed a
taste, and now they came back to me as if in the dotage of grief. Alas, I feel
how much even of incipient madness might have been discovered in the gorgeous
and fantastic draperies, in the solemn carvings of Egypt, in the wild cornices
and furniture, in the Bedlam patterns of the carpets of tufted gold! I had
become a bounden slave in the trammels of opium, and my labors and my orders
had taken a coloring from my dreams. But these absurdities I must not pause to
detail. Let me speak only of that one chamber, ever accursed, whither in a
moment of mental alienation, I led from the altar as my bride—as the successor
of the unforgotten Ligeia—the fair-haired and blue-eyed Lady Rowena Trevanion,
of Tremaine.
There is no individual
portion of the architecture and decoration of that bridal chamber which is not
now visibly before me. Where were the souls of the haughty family of the bride,
when, through thirst of gold, they permitted to pass the threshold of an
apartment so bedecked, a maiden and a daughter so beloved? I
have said that I minutely remember the details of the chamber, yet I am sadly
forgetful on topics of deep moment; and here there was no system, no keeping,
in the fantastic display, to take hold upon the memory. The room lay in a high
turret of the castellated abbey, was pentagonal in shape, and of capacious
size. Occupying the whole southern face of the pentagon was the sole window—an
immense sheet of unbroken glass from Venice—a single pane, and tinted of a
leaden hue, so that the rays of either the sun or moon passing through it fell
with a ghastly luster on the objects within. Over the upper portion of this
huge window extended the trellis-work of an aged vine which clambered up the
massy walls of the turret. The ceiling, of gloomy-looking oak, was excessively
lofty, vaulted, and elaborately fretted with the wildest and most grotesque
specimens of a semi-Gothic, semi-Druidical device. From out the most central
recess of this melancholy vaulting depended, by a single chain of gold with
long links, a huge censer of the same metal, Saracenic in pattern, and with
many perforations so contrived that there writhed in and out of them, as if
endued with a serpent vitality, a continual succession of parti-colored fires.
Some few ottomans and
golden candelabra of Eastern figure were in various stations about; and there
was the couch, too—the bridal couch—of an Indian model, and low, and sculptured
of solid ebony, with a pall-like canopy above. In each of the angles of the
chamber stood on end a gigantic sarcophagus of black granite, from the tombs of
the kings over against Luxor, with their aged lids full of immemorial
sculpture. But in the draping of the apartment lay, alas! the chief fantasy of
all. The lofty walls, gigantic in height—even unproportionably so—were hung from
summit to foot in vast folds with a heavy and massive-looking tapestry—tapestry
of a material which was found alike as a carpet on the floor, as a covering for
the ottomans and the ebony bed, as a canopy for the bed, and as the gorgeous
volutes of the curtains which partially shaded the window. The material
was the richest cloth of gold. It was spotted all over, at irregular intervals,
with arabesque figures, about a foot in diameter, and wrought upon the cloth in
patterns of the most jetty black. But these figures partook of the true
character of the arabesque only when regarded from a single point of view. By a
contrivance now common, and indeed traceable to a very remote period of
antiquity, they were made changeable in aspect. To one entering the room they
bore the appearance of simple monstrosities, but upon a farther advance this
appearance gradually departed; and, step by step as the visitor moved his
station in the chamber he saw himself surrounded by an endless succession of
the ghastly forms which belong to the superstition of the Norman, or arise in
the guilty slumbers of the monk. The phantasmagoric effect was vastly
heightened by the artificial introduction of a strong continual current of wind
behind the draperies—giving a hideous and uneasy animation to the whole.
In halls such as
these—in a bridal chamber such as this—I passed, with the Lady of Tremaine, the
unhallowed hours of the first month of our marriage—passed them with but little
disquietude. That my wife dreaded the fierce moodiness of my temper, that she
shunned me, and loved me but little, I could not help perceiving; but it gave
me rather pleasure than otherwise. I loathed her with a hatred belonging more
to demon than to man. My memory flew back—oh, with what intensity of regret!—to
Ligeia, the beloved, the august, the beautiful, the entombed. I revelled in
recollections of her purity, of her wisdom, of her lofty, her ethereal nature,
of her passionate, her idolatrous love. Now, then, did my spirit fully and
freely burn with more than all the fires of her own. In the excitement of my
opium dreams (for I was habitually fettered in the shackles of the drug) I
would call aloud upon her name, during the silence of the night, or among the
sheltered recesses of the glens by day, as if, through the wild eagerness, the
solemn passion, the consuming ardor of my longing for the departed, I could
restore her to the pathway she had abandoned—ah, could it be for ever?—upon the
earth.
About the commencement
of the second month of the marriage the Lady Rowena was attacked with sudden
illness, from which her recovery was slow. The fever which consumed her
rendered her nights uneasy; and in her perturbed state of half-slumber she
spoke of sounds and of motions in and about the chamber of the turret which I
concluded had no origin save in the distemper of her fancy, or perhaps in the
phantasmagoric influences of the chamber itself. She became at length
convalescent—finally, well. Yet but a brief period elapsed ere a second more
violent disorder again threw her upon a bed of suffering, and from this attack
her frame, at all times feeble, never altogether recovered. Her illnesses were,
after this epoch, of alarming character and of more alarming recurrence,
defying alike the knowledge and the great exertions of her physicians. With the
increase of the chronic disease, which had thus, apparently, taken too sure
hold upon her constitution to be eradicated by human means, I could not fail to
observe a similar increase in the nervous irritation of her temperament, and in
her excitability by trivial causes of fear. She spoke again, and now more
frequently and pertinaciously, of the sounds—of the slight sounds—and of the
unusual motions among the tapestries, to which she had formerly alluded.
One night near the
closing in of September she pressed this distressing subject with more than
usual emphasis upon my attention. She had just awakened from an unquiet
slumber, and I had been watching, with feelings half of anxiety, half of vague
terror, the workings of her emaciated countenance. I sat by the side of her
ebony bed, upon one of the ottomans of India. She partly arose, and spoke, in
an earnest low whisper, of sounds which she then heard, but which I could not
hear, of motions which she then saw, but which I could not perceive. The wind
was rushing hurriedly behind the tapestries, and I wished to show her (what,
let me confess it, I could not all believe) that those almost inarticulate
breathings, and those very gentle variations of the figures upon the wall, were
but the natural effects of that customary rushing of the wind. But a deadly
pallor overspreading her face had proved to me that my exertions to reassure
her would be fruitless. She appeared to be fainting, and no attendants were
within call. I remembered where was deposited a decanter of light wine which
had been ordered by her physicians, and hastened across the chamber to procure
it. But as I stepped beneath the light of the censer, two circumstances of a
startling nature attracted my attention. I had felt that some palpable although
invisible object had passed lightly by my person; and I saw that there lay upon
the golden carpet, in the very middle of the rich luster thrown from the
censer, a shadow—a faint, indefinite shadow of angelic aspect, such as might be
fancied for the shadow of a shade. But I was wild with the excitement of an
immoderate dose of opium, and heeded these things but little, nor spoke of
them to Rowena. Having found the wine, I recrossed the chamber and poured out a
gobletful which I held to the lips of the fainting lady. She had now partially
recovered, however, and took the vessel herself, while I sank upon an ottoman
near me, with my eyes fastened upon her person. It was then that I became
distinctly aware of a gentle footfall upon the carpet and near the couch; and
in a second after as Rowena was in the act of raising the wine to her lips I
saw, or may have dreamed that I saw, fall within the goblet, as if from some
invisible spring in the atmosphere of the room, three or four large drops of a
brilliant and ruby-colored fluid. If this I saw—not so Rowena. She swallowed
the wine unhesitatingly, and I forbore to speak to her of a circumstance which
must, after all, I considered, have been but the suggestion of a vivid
imagination, rendered morbidly active by the terror of the lady, by the opium,
and by the hour.
Yet I cannot conceal it
from my own perception that, immediately subsequent to the fall of the
ruby-drops, a rapid change for the worse took place in the disorder of my wife,
so that, on the third subsequent night the hands of her menials prepared her
for the tomb, and on the fourth I sat alone with her shrouded body in that
fantastic chamber which had received her as my bride. Wild visions, opium-engendered,
fluttered, shadow-like, before me. I gazed with unquiet eye upon the sarcophagi
in the angles of the room, upon the varying figures of the drapery, and upon
the writhing of the parti-colored fires in the censer overhead. My eyes then
fell, as I called to mind the circumstances of a former night, to the spot
beneath the glare of the censer where I had seen the faint traces of the
shadow. It was there, however, no longer; and breathing with greater freedom, I
turned my glances to the pallid and rigid figure upon the bed. Then rushed upon
me a thousand memories of Ligeia—and then came back upon my heart with the
turbulent violence of a flood the whole of that unutterable woe with which I
had regarded her thus enshrouded. The night waned; and still,
with a bosom full of bitter thoughts of the one only and supremely beloved, I
remained gazing upon the body of Rowena.
It might have been
midnight, or perhaps earlier, or later—for I had taken no note of time—when a
sob, low, gentle, but very distinct, startled me from my revery. I felt that
it came from the bed of ebony—the bed of death. I listened in an agony of
superstitious terror—but there was no repetition of the sound. I strained my
vision to detect any motion in the corpse—but there was not the slightest
perceptible. Yet I could not have been deceived. I had heard
the noise, however faint, and my soul was awakened within me. I resolutely and
perseveringly kept my attention riveted upon the body. Many minutes elapsed
before any circumstance occurred tending to throw light upon the mystery. At
length it became evident that a slight, a very feeble and barely noticeable
tinge of color had flushed up within the cheeks, and along the sunken small
veins of the eyelids. Through a species of unutterable horror and awe, for
which the language of mortality has no sufficiently energetic expression, I
felt my heart cease to beat, my limbs grow rigid where I sat. Yet a sense of
duty finally operated to restore my self-possession. I could no longer
doubt that we had been precipitate in our preparations—that Rowena still lived.
It was necessary that some immediate exertion be made, yet the turret was
altogether apart from the portion of the abbey tenanted by the servants—there
were none within call, and I had no means of summoning them to my aid without
leaving the room for many minutes—and this I could not venture to do. I
therefore struggled alone in my endeavors to call back the spirit still
hovering. In a short period it was certain, however, that a relapse had taken
place, the color disappeared from both eyelid and cheek, leaving a wanness even
more than that of marble; the lips became doubly shrivelled and pinched up in
the ghastly expression of death; a repulsive clamminess and coldness overspread
rapidly the surface of the body; and all the usual rigorous stiffness
immediately supervened. I fell back with a shudder upon the couch from which I
had been so startlingly aroused, and again gave myself up to passionate waking
visions of Ligeia.
An hour thus elapsed,
when—could it be possible?—I was a second time aware of some vague sound
issuing from the region of the bed. I listened—in extremity of horror. The
sound came again—it was a sigh. Rushing to the corpse, I saw—distinctly saw—a
tremor upon the lips. In a minute afterward they relaxed, disclosing a bright
line of the pearly teeth. Amazement now struggled in my bosom with the profound
awe which had hitherto reigned there alone. I felt that my vision grew dim,
that my reason wandered, and it was only by a violent effort that I at length
succeeded in nerving myself to the task which duty thus once more had pointed out.
There was now a partial glow upon the forehead and upon the cheek and throat, a
perceptible warmth pervaded the whole frame, there was even a slight pulsation
at the heart. The lady lived; and with redoubled ardor I betook
myself to the task of restoration. I chafed and bathed the temples and the
hands and used every exertion which experience and no little medical reading
could suggest. But in vain. Suddenly, the color fled, the pulsation ceased, the
lips resumed the expression of the dead, and, in an instant afterward, the
whole body took upon itself the icy chilliness, the livid hue, the intense
rigidity, the sunken outline, and all the loathsome peculiarities of that which
has been, for many days, a tenant of the tomb.
And again I sunk into
visions of Ligeia—and again, (what marvel that I shudder while I write?) again there
reached my ears a low sob from the region of the ebony bed. But why should I
minutely detail the unspeakable horrors of that night? Why should I pause to
relate how, time after time, until near the period of the gray dawn, this
hideous drama of revivification was repeated; how each terrific relapse was
only into a sterner and apparently more irredeemable death; how each agony wore
the aspect of a struggle with some invisible foe; and how each struggle was
succeeded by I know not what of wild change in the personal appearance of the
corpse? Let me hurry to a conclusion.
The greater part of the
fearful night had worn away, and she who had been dead, once again stirred—and
now more vigorously than hitherto, although arousing from a dissolution more
appalling in its utter hopelessness than any. I had long ceased to struggle or
to move, and remained sitting rigidly upon the ottoman, a helpless prey to
a whirl of violent emotions, of which extreme awe was perhaps the least
terrible, the least consuming. The corpse, I repeat, stirred, and now more
vigorously than before. The hues of life flushed up with unwonted energy into
the countenance, the limbs relaxed, and, save that the eyelids were yet pressed
heavily together and that the bandages and draperies of the grave still
imparted their charnel character to the figure, I might have dreamed that
Rowena had indeed shaken off utterly the fetters of Death. But if this idea was
not even then altogether adopted, I could at least doubt no longer, when
arising from the bed, tottering, with feeble steps, with closed eyes, and with
the manner of one bewildered in a dream, the thing that was enshrouded advanced
boldly and palpably into the middle of the apartment.
I trembled not—I stirred
not—for a crowd of unutterable fancies connected with the air, the stature, the
demeanor of the figure, rushing hurriedly through my brain, had paralyzed—had
chilled me into stone. I stirred not—but gazed upon the apparition. There was a
mad disorder in my thoughts—a tumult unappeasable. Could it, indeed, be the
living Rowena who confronted me? Could it indeed be Rowena at all—the
fair-haired, the blue-eyed Lady Rowena Trevanion of Tremaine? Why, why should
I doubt it? The bandage lay heavily about the mouth—but then might it not be
the mouth of the breathing Lady of Tremaine? And the cheeks—there were the
roses as in her noon of life—yes, these might indeed be the fair cheeks of the
living Lady of Tremaine. And the chin, with its dimples, as in health,
might it not be hers?—but had she then grown taller since her malady?
What inexpressible madness seized me with that thought! One bound, and I had
reached her feet. Shrinking from my touch she let fall from her head,
unloosened, the ghastly cerements which had confined it, and there streamed
forth into the rushing atmosphere of the chamber huge masses of long and
dishevelled hair; it was blacker than the raven wings of midnight!
And now slowly opened the eyes of the figure which stood before me. "Here
then, at least," I shrieked aloud, "can I never—can I never be
mistaken—these are the full and the black, and the wild eyes of my lost love—of
the Lady—of the Lady Ligeia."
7.THE SYLPH AND THE FATHER[5]
By Elsa Barker
Passing yesterday along
the line where the great French army stands before its powerful opponent, and
marking the spirit of courage and aspiration which makes it seem like a long
line of living light, I saw a familiar face in the regions outside the
physical.
I paused, highly pleased
at the encounter, and the sylph—for it was a sylph whom I met—paused also with
a little smile of recognition.
Do you recall in my
former book the story of a sylph, Meriline, who was the companion and familiar
of a student of magic who lived in the rue de Vaugirard in Paris?
It was Meriline that I
met above the line of light which shows to wanderers in the astral regions
where the soldiers of la belle France fight and die for the
same ideal which inspired Jeanne d'Arc—to drive the foreigner out of France.
"Where is your
friend and master?" I asked the sylph, and she pointed below to a trench
which spoke loud its determination to conquer.
"I am here, to be
still with him," she said.
"And can you speak
to him here?" I asked.
"I can always speak
with him," she answered. "I have been very useful to him—and to
France."
"To France?" I
enquired, with growing interest.
"Oh, yes! When his
commanding officer wants to know what is being plotted over there, he often
asks my friend, and my friend asks me."
"Truly," I thought,
"the French are an inspired people, when the officers of armies ask
guidance from the realm of the invisible! But had not Jeanne her visions?"
"And how do you
gain the information desired?" I asked, drawing nearer to Meriline, who
seemed more serious than when we met some years before in Paris.
"Why," she
answered, "I go over there and look around me. I have learned what to look
for, he has taught me, and when I bring him news he rewards me with more
love."
"And do you love
him still, as of old?"
"As of old?"
"Yes, as you did
back there in Paris."
"Time must have
passed slowly with you," said the sylph, "if you call a few years ago
'as of old'."
"Are a few years,
then, as nothing?"
"A few years are as
nothing to me," she replied. "I have lived a long time."
"And do you know
the future of your friend?" I asked.
A puzzled look came over
the face of Meriline, and she said, slowly:
"I used to know
everything that would happen to him, because I could read his will, and
whatever he willed came to pass; but since we have been out here he seems to
have lost his will."
"Lost his
will!" I exclaimed, in surprise.
"Yes, lost his
will; for he prays continually to a great Being whom he loves far more than me,
and he always prays one prayer, 'Thy will be done!' It used to be his will
which was always done; but now, as I say, he seems to have lost his will."
"Perhaps," I
said, "it is true of the will as was once said of the life, and he that
loses his will shall find it."
"I hope he will
find it soon," she answered, "for in the old days he was always
giving me interesting things to do, to help him achieve the purposes of his
will, and now he only sends me over there. I don't like over there!"
"Why not?"
"Because my friend
is menaced by something over there."
"And what has his
will to do with that?"
"Why, even about
that, he says all day to the great Being that he loves so much more than me,
'Thy will be done.'"
"Do you think you
could learn to say it, too?" I asked.
"I say it after him
sometimes; but I don't know what it means."
"Have you never
heard of God?"
"I have heard of
many gods, of Isis and Osiris and Set, and of Horus, the son of Osiris."
"And is it to one
of these that he says, 'Thy will be done'?"
"Oh, no! It is not
to any of the gods that he used to call upon in his magical working. This is
some new god that he has found."
"Or the oldest of
all gods that he has returned to," I suggested. "What does he call
Him?"
"Our Father who art
in heaven."
"If you also should
learn to say 'Thy will be done' to our Father who is in heaven," I said,
"it might help you toward the attainment of that soul you were wanting and
waiting for, when last we met in Paris."
"How could our
Father help me?"
"It was He who gave
souls to men," I said.
The eyes of the sylph
were brilliant with something almost human.
"And could He give
a soul to me?"
"It is said that
He can do anything."
"Then I will ask
Him for a soul."
"But to ask Him for
a soul," I said, "is not to pray the prayer your friend prays."
"He only
says——"
"Yes, I know.
Suppose you say it after him."
"I will, if you
will tell me what it means. I like to do what my friend does."
"'Thy will be
done,'" I said, "when addressed to the Father in heaven, means that
we give up all our desires, whether for pleasure or love or happiness, or
anything else, and lay all those desires at His feet, sacrificing all we have
or hope for to Him, because we love Him more than ourselves."
"That is a strange
way to get what one desires," she said.
"It is not done to
get what one desires," I answered.
"But what is it
done for?"
"For love of the
Father in heaven."
"But I do not know
the Father in heaven. What is He?"
"He is the Source
and the Goal of the being of your friend. He is the One that your friend will
re-become some day, if he can forever say to Him, Thy will be done."
"The One he will
re-become?"
"Yes, for when he
blends his will with that of the Father in heaven, the Father in heaven dwells
in his heart and the two become one."
"Then is the Father
in heaven really the Self of my friend?"
"The greatest
philosopher could not have expressed it more truly," I said.
"Then indeed do I
love the Father in heaven," breathed the sylph, "and I will say now
every day and all day, 'Thy will be done' to Him."
"Even if it
separates you from your friend?"
"How can it
separate me from my friend, if the Father is the Self of him?"
"I would that all
angels were your equal in learning," I said.
But Meriline had turned
from me in utter forgetfulness, and was saying over and over, with joy in her
uplifted face, "Thy will be done! Thy will be done!"
"Truly," I
said to myself, as I passed along the line, "he who worships the Father as
the Self of the beloved has already acquired a soul."
8.A GHOST[6]
By
Lafcadio Hearn
I
Perhaps the man who
never wanders away from the place of his birth may pass all his life without
knowing ghosts; but the nomad is more than likely to make their acquaintance. I
refer to the civilized nomad, whose wanderings are not prompted by hope of
gain, nor determined by pleasure, but simply compelled by certain necessities
of his being—the man whose inner secret nature is totally at variance with the
stable conditions of a society to which he belongs only by accident. However
intellectually trained, he must always remain the slave of singular impulses
which have no rational source, and which will often amaze him no less by their
mastering power than by their continuous savage opposition to his every
material interest. These may, perhaps, be traced back to some ancestral
habit—be explained by self-evident hereditary tendencies. Or perhaps they may
not,—in which event the victim can only surmise himself the Imago of
some pre-existent larval aspiration—the full development of desires long
dormant in a chain of more limited lives.
Assuredly the nomadic
impulses differ in every member of the class, take infinite variety from
individual sensitiveness to environment—the line of least resistance for
one being that of greatest resistance for another; no two courses of true
nomadism can ever be wholly the same. Diversified of necessity both impulse and
direction, even as human nature is diversified! Never since consciousness of
time began were two beings born who possessed exactly the same quality of
voice, the same precise degree of nervous impressibility, or, in brief, the
same combination of those viewless force-storing molecules which shape and
poise themselves in sentient substance. Vain, therefore, all striving to
particularize the curious psychology of such existences; at the very utmost it
is possible only to describe such impulses and preceptions of nomadism as lie
within the very small range of one's own observation. And whatever in these is
strictly personal can have little interest or value except in so far as it
holds something in common with the great general experience of restless lives.
To such experience may belong, I think, one ultimate result of all those
irrational partings, self-wrecking, sudden isolations, abrupt severances from
all attachment, which form the history of the nomad—the knowledge that a strong
silence is ever deepening and expanding about one's life, and that in that
silence there are ghosts.
II
Oh! the first vague
charm, the first sunny illusion of some fair city, when vistas of unknown
streets all seem leading to the realization of a hope you dare not even
whisper; when even the shadows look beautiful, and strange façades appear
to smile good omen through light of gold! And those first winning relations
with men, while you are still a stranger, and only the better and the brighter
side of their nature is turned to you! All is yet a delightful, luminous
indefiniteness—sensation of streets and of men—like some beautifully tinted
photograph slightly out of focus.
Then the slow solid
sharpening of details all about you, thrusting through illusion and dispelling
it, growing keener and harder day by day through long dull seasons; while your
feet learn to remember all asperities of pavements, and your eyes all
physiognomy of buildings and of persons—failures of masonry, furrowed lines of
pain. Thereafter only the aching of monotony intolerable, and the hatred of
sameness grown dismal, and dread of the merciless, inevitable, daily and hourly
repetition of things; while those impulses of unrest, which are Nature's
urgings through that ancestral experience which lives in each one of
us—outcries of sea and peak and sky to man—ever make wilder appeal. Strong
friendships may have been formed; but there finally comes a day when even these
can give no consolation for the pain of monotony, and you feel that in order to
live you must decide, regardless of result, to shake forever from your feet the
familiar dust of that place.
And, nevertheless, in
the hour of departure you feel a pang. As train or steamer bears you away from
the city and its myriad associations, the old illusive impression will quiver
back about you for a moment—not as if to mock the expectation of the past, but
softly, touchingly, as if pleading to you to stay; and such a sadness,
such a tenderness may come to you, as one knows after reconciliation with a
friend misapprehended and unjustly judged. But you will never more see those
streets—except in dreams.
Through sleep only they
will open again before you, steeped in the illusive vagueness of the first
long-past day, peopled only by friends outstretching to you. Soundlessly you
will tread those shadowy pavements many times, to knock in thought, perhaps, at
doors which the dead will open to you. But with the passing of years all
becomes dim—so dim that even asleep you know 'tis only a ghost-city, with
streets going to nowhere. And finally whatever is left of it becomes confused
and blended with cloudy memories of other cities—one endless bewilderment of
filmy architecture in which nothing is distinctly recognizable, though the
whole gives the sensation of having been seen before, ever so long ago.
000
Meantime, in the course
of wanderings more or less aimless, there has slowly grown upon you a suspicion
of being haunted—so frequently does a certain hazy presence intrude itself upon
the visual memory. This, however, appears to gain rather than to lose in
definiteness; with each return its visibility seems to increase. And the
suspicion that you may be haunted gradually develops into a certainty.
III
You are haunted—whether
your way lie through the brown gloom of London winter, or the azure splendor of
an equatorial day—whether your steps be tracked in snows, or in the burning
black sand of a tropic beach—whether you rest beneath the swart shade of
Northern pines, or under spidery umbrages of palm—you are haunted ever and
everywhere by a certain gentle presence. There is nothing fearsome in this
haunting—the gentlest face, the kindliest voice—oddly familiar and distinct,
though feeble as the hum of a bee.
But it tantalizes—this
haunting—like those sudden surprises of sensation within us,
though seemingly not of us, which some dreamers have sought to
interpret as inherited remembrances, recollections of preëxistence. Vainly you
ask yourself, "Whose voice? Whose face?" It is neither young nor old,
the Face; it has a vapory indefinableness that leaves it a riddle; its
diaphaneity reveals no particular tint; perhaps you may not even be quite sure
whether it has a beard. But its expression is always gracious, passionless,
smiling—like the smiling of unknown friends in dreams, with infinite indulgence
for any folly, even a dream-folly. Except in that you cannot permanently banish
it, the presence offers no positive resistance to your will; it accepts each
caprice with obedience; it meets your every whim with angelic patience. It is
never critical, never makes plaint even by a look, never proves irksome; yet
you cannot ignore it, because of a certain queer power it possesses to make
something stir and quiver in your heart—like an old vague sweet
regret—something buried alive which will not die. And so often does this happen
that desire to solve the riddle becomes a pain; that you finally find yourself
making supplication to the Presence; addressing to it questions which it will
never answer directly, but only by a smile or by words having no relation
to the asking—words enigmatic, which make mysterious agitation in old forsaken
fields of memory, even as a wind betimes, over wide wastes of marsh, sets all
the grasses whispering about nothing. But you will question on, untiringly,
through the nights and days of years:
"Who are you? What
are you? What is this weird relation that you bear to me? All you say to me I
feel that I have heard before, but where? But when? By what name am I to call
you, since you will answer to none that I remember? Surely you do not live; yet
I know the sleeping-places of all my dead, and yours I do not know! Neither are
you any dream—for dreams distort and change; and you, you are ever the same.
Nor are you any hallucination; for all my senses are still vivid and strong.
This only I know beyond doubt—that you are of the Past; you belong to
memory—but to the memory of what dead suns?"
000
Then, some day or night,
unexpectedly, there comes to you at least, with a soft swift tingling shock as
of fingers invisible, the knowledge that the Face is not the memory of any one
face; but a multiple image formed of the traits of many dear faces,
superimposed by remembrance, and interblended by affection into one ghostly
personality—infinitely sympathetic, phantasmally beautiful—a Composite of
recollections! And the Voice is the echo of no one voice, but the echoing of
many voices, molten into a single utterance, a single impossible tone, thin
through remoteness of time, but inexpressibly caressing.
IV
Thou most gentle
Composite!—thou nameless and exquisite Unreality, thrilled into semblance of
being from out the sum of all lost sympathies!—thou Ghost of all dear vanished
things, with thy vain appeal of eyes that looked for my coming, and vague faint
pleading of voices against oblivion, and thin electric touch of buried
hands—must thou pass away forever with my passing, even as the Shadow that I
cast, O thou Shadowing of Souls?
I am not sure. For there
comes to me this dream—that if aught in human life hold power to pass, like a
swerved sunray through interstellar spaces, into the infinite mystery, to send
one sweet strong vibration through immemorial Time, might not some luminous
future be peopled with such as thou? And in so far as that which makes for us
the subtlest charm of being can lend one choral note to the Symphony of the
Unknowable Purpose—in so much might there not endure also to greet thee,
another Composite One—embodying, indeed, the comeliness of many lives, yet
keeping likewise some visible memory of all that may have been gracious in this
thy friend?
9.THE EYES OF THE PANTHER[7]
By
Ambrose Bierce
I.ONE DOES NOT ALWAYS MARRY WHEN INSANE
A man and a woman—nature
had done the grouping—sat on a rustic seat, in the late afternoon. The man was middle-aged,
slender, swarthy, with the expression of a poet and the complexion of a
pirate—a man at whom one would look again. The woman was young, blonde,
graceful, with something in her figure and movements suggesting the word
"lithe." She was habited in a gray gown with odd brown markings in
the texture. She may have been beautiful; one could not readily say, for her
eyes denied attention to all else. They were gray-green, long and narrow, with
an expression defying analysis. One could only know that they were disquieting.
Cleopatra may have had such eyes.
The man and the woman
talked.
"Yes," said
the woman, "I love you, God knows! But marry you, no. I cannot, will
not."
"Irene, you have
said that many times, yet always have denied me a reason. I've a right to know,
to understand, to feel and prove my fortitude if I have it. Give me a
reason."
"For loving
you?"
The woman was smiling
through her tears and her pallor. That did not stir any sense of humor in the
man.
"No; there is no
reason for that. A reason for not marrying me. I've a right to know. I must
know. I will know!"
He had risen and was
standing before her with clenched hands, on his face a frown—it might have been
called a scowl. He looked as if he might attempt to learn by strangling her.
She smiled no more—merely sat looking up into his face with a fixed, set regard
that was utterly without emotion or sentiment. Yet it had something in it that
tamed his resentment and made him shiver.
"You are determined
to have my reason?" she asked in a tone that was entirely mechanical—a
tone that might have been her look made audible.
"If you please—if
I'm not asking too much."
Apparently this lord of
creation was yielding some part of his dominion over his co-creature.
"Very well, you
shall know: I am insane."
The man started, then
looked incredulous and was conscious that he ought to be amused. But, again,
the sense of humor failed him in his need and despite his disbelief he was
profoundly disturbed by that which he did not believe. Between our convictions
and our feelings there is no good understanding.
"That is what the
physicians would say," the woman continued, "if they knew. I might
myself prefer to call it a case of 'possession.' Sit down and hear what I
have to say."
The man silently resumed
his seat beside her on the rustic bench by the wayside. Over against them on
the eastern side of the valley the hills were already sunset-flushed and the
stillness all about was of that peculiar quality that foretells the twilight.
Something of its mysterious and significant solemnity had imparted itself to
the man's mood. In the spiritual, as in the material world, are signs and
presages of night. Rarely meeting her look, and whenever he did so conscious of
the indefinable dread with which, despite their feline beauty, her eyes always
affected him, Jenner Brading listened in silence to the story told by Irene
Marlowe. In deference to the reader's possible prejudice against the artless
method of an unpracticed historian the author ventures to substitute his own
version for hers.
II.A ROOM MAY BE TOO NARROW FOR THREE, THOUGH
ONE IS OUTSIDE
In a little log house
containing a single room sparely and rudely furnished, crouching on the floor
against one of the walls, was a woman, clasping to her breast a child. Outside,
a dense unbroken forest extended for many miles in every direction. This was at
night and the room was black dark; no human eye could have discerned the woman
and the child. Yet they were observed, narrowly, vigilantly, with never even a
momentary slackening of attention; and that is the pivotal fact upon which
this narrative turns.
Charles Marlowe was of
the class, now extinct in this country, of woodmen pioneers—men who found their
most acceptable surroundings in sylvan solitudes that stretched along the
eastern slope of the Mississippi Valley, from the Great Lakes to the Gulf of
Mexico. For more than a hundred years these men pushed ever westward,
generation after generation, with rifle and ax, reclaiming from Nature and her
savage children here and there an isolated acreage for the plow, no sooner
reclaimed than surrendered to their less venturesome but more thrifty
successors. At last they burst through the edge of the forest into the open
country and vanished as if they had fallen over a cliff. The woodman pioneer is
no more; the pioneer of the plains—he whose easy task it was to subdue for
occupancy two-thirds of the country in a single generation—is another and
inferior creation. With Charles Marlowe in the wilderness, sharing the dangers,
hardships and privations of that strange unprofitable life, were his wife and
child, to whom, in the manner of his class in which the domestic virtues were a
religion, he was passionately attached. The woman was still young enough to be
comely, new enough to the awful isolation of her lot to be cheerful. By
withholding the large capacity for happiness which the simple satisfactions of
the forest life could not have filled, Heaven had dealt honorably with her. In
her light household tasks, her child, her husband and her few foolish books,
she found abundant provision for her needs.
One morning in midsummer
Marlowe took down his rifle from the wooden hooks on the wall and
signified his intention of getting game.
"We've meat
enough," said the wife; "please don't go out to-day. I dreamed last
night, O, such a dreadful thing! I cannot recollect it, but I'm almost sure
that it will come to pass if you go out."
It is painful to confess
that Marlowe received this solemn statement with less of gravity than was due
to the mysterious nature of the calamity foreshadowed. In truth, he laughed.
"Try to
remember," he said. "Maybe you dreamed that Baby had lost the power
of speech."
The conjecture was
obviously suggested by the fact that Baby, clinging to the fringe of his
hunting-coat with all her ten pudgy thumbs, was at that moment uttering her
sense of the situation in a series of exultant goo-goos inspired by sight of
her father's raccoon-skin cap.
The woman yielded:
lacking the gift of humor she could not hold out against his kindly badinage.
So, with a kiss for the mother and a kiss for the child, he left the house and
closed the door upon his happiness forever.
At nightfall he had not
returned. The woman prepared supper and waited. Then she put Baby to bed and
sang softly to her until she slept. By this time the fire on the hearth, at
which she had cooked supper, had burned out and the room was lighted by a
single candle. This she afterward placed in the open window as a sign and
welcome to the hunter if he should approach from that side. She had
thoughtfully closed and barred the door against such wild animals as might
prefer it to an open window—of the habits of beasts of prey in entering a
house uninvited she was not advised, though with true female prevision she may
have considered the possibility of their entrance by way of the chimney. As the
night wore on she became not less anxious, but more drowsy, and at last rested
her arms upon the bed by the child and her head upon the arms. The candle in
the window burned down to the socket, sputtered and flared a moment and went
out unobserved; for the woman slept and dreamed.
In her dreams she sat
beside the cradle of a second child. The first one was dead. The father was
dead. The home in the forest was lost and the dwelling in which she lived was
unfamiliar. There were heavy oaken doors, always closed, and outside the
windows, fastened into the thick stone walls, were iron bars, obviously (so she
thought) a provision against Indians. All this she noted with an infinite
self-pity, but without surprise—an emotion unknown in dreams. The child in the
cradle was invisible under its coverlet which something impelled her to remove.
She did so, disclosing the face of a wild animal! In the shock of this dreadful
revelation the dreamer awoke, trembling in the darkness of her cabin in the
wood.
As a sense of her actual
surroundings came slowly back to her she felt for the child that was not a
dream, and assured herself by its breathing that all was well with it; nor
could she forbear to pass a hand lightly across its face. Then, moved by some
impulse for which she probably could not have accounted, she rose and took the
sleeping babe in her arms, holding it close against her breast. The head of the
child's cot was against the wall to which the woman now turned her back as
she stood. Lifting her eyes she saw two bright objects starring the darkness
with a reddish-green glow. She took them to be two coals on the hearth, but
with her returning sense of direction came the disquieting consciousness that
they were not in that quarter of the room, moreover were too high, being nearly
at the level of the eyes—of her own eyes. For these were the eyes of a panther.
The beast was at the
open window directly opposite and not five paces away. Nothing but those
terrible eyes was visible, but in the dreadful tumult of her feelings as the
situation disclosed itself to her understanding she somehow knew that the
animal was standing on its hinder feet, supporting itself with its paws on the
window-ledge. That signified a malign interest—not the mere gratification of an
indolent curiosity. The consciousness of the attitude was an added horror,
accentuating the menace of those awful eyes, in whose steadfast fire her
strength and courage were alike consumed. Under their silent questioning she
shuddered and turned sick. Her knees failed her, and by degrees, instinctively
striving to avoid a sudden movement that might bring the beast upon her, she
sank to the floor, crouched against the wall and tried to shield the babe with
her trembling body without withdrawing her gaze from the luminous orbs that
were killing her. No thought of her husband came to her in her agony—no hope
nor suggestion of rescue or escape. Her capacity for thought and feeling had
narrowed to the dimensions of a single emotion—fear of the animal's spring, of
the impact of its body, the buffeting of its great arms, the feel of its teeth
in her throat, the mangling of her babe. Motionless now and in absolute
silence, she awaited her doom, the moments growing to hours, to years, to ages;
and still those devilish eyes maintained their watch.
000
Returning to his cabin
late at night with a deer on his shoulders Charles Marlowe tried the door. It
did not yield. He knocked; there was no answer. He laid down his deer and went
around to the window. As he turned the angle of the building he fancied he
heard a sound as of stealthy footfalls and a rustling in the undergrowth of the
forest, but they were too slight for certainty, even to his practiced ear.
Approaching the window, and to his surprise finding it open, he threw his leg
over the sill and entered. All was darkness and silence. He groped his way to
the fire-place, struck a match and lit a candle. Then he looked about. Cowering
on the floor against a wall was his wife, clasping his child. As he sprang
toward her she rose and broke into laughter, long, loud, and mechanical, devoid
of gladness and devoid of sense—the laughter that is not out of keeping with
the clanking of a chain. Hardly knowing what he did he extended his arms. She
laid the babe in them. It was dead—pressed to death in its mother's embrace.
III.THE THEORY OF THE DEFENSE
That is what occurred
during a night in a forest, but not all of it did Irene Marlowe relate to
Jenner Brading; not all of it was known to her. When she had concluded the
sun was below the horizon and the long summer twilight had begun to deepen in
the hollows of the land. For some moments Brading was silent, expecting the
narrative to be carried forward to some definite connection with the
conversation introducing it; but the narrator was as silent as he, her face
averted, her hands clasping and unclasping themselves as they lay in her lap,
with a singular suggestion of an activity independent of her will.
"It is a sad, a
terrible story," said Brading at last, "but I do not understand. You
call Charles Marlowe father; that I know. That he is old before his time,
broken by some great sorrow, I have seen, or thought I saw. But, pardon me, you
said that you—that you—"
"That I am
insane," said the girl, without a movement of head or body.
"But, Irene, you
say—please, dear, do not look away from me—you say that the child was dead, not
demented."
"Yes, that one—I am
the second. I was born three months after that night, my mother being
mercifully permitted to lay down her life in giving me mine."
Brading was again
silent; he was a trifle dazed and could not at once think of the right thing to
say. Her face was still turned away. In his embarrassment he reached
impulsively toward the hands that lay closing and unclosing in her lap, but
something—he could not have said what—restrained him. He then remembered,
vaguely, that he had never altogether cared to take her hand.
"Is it
likely," she resumed, "that a person born under such
circumstances is like others—is what you call sane?"
Brading did not reply;
he was preoccupied with a new thought that was taking shape in his mind—what a
scientist would have called an hypothesis; a detective, a theory. It might
throw an added light, albeit a lurid one, upon such doubt of her sanity as her
own assertion had not dispelled.
The country was still
new and, outside the villages, sparsely populated. The professional hunter was
still a familiar figure, and among his trophies were heads and pelts of the
larger kinds of game. Tales variously credible of nocturnal meetings with
savage animals in lonely roads were sometimes current, passed through the
customary stages of growth and decay, and were forgotten. A recent addition to
these popular apocrypha, originating, apparently, by spontaneous generation in
several households, was of a panther which had frightened some of their members
by looking in at windows by night. The yarn had caused its little ripple of
excitement—had even attained to the distinction of a place in the local
newspaper; but Brading had given it no attention. Its likeness to the story to
which he had just listened now impressed him as perhaps more than accidental.
Was it not possible that the one story had suggested the other—that finding
congenial conditions in a morbid mind and a fertile fancy, it had grown to the
tragic tale that he had heard?
Brading recalled certain
circumstances of the girl's history and disposition of which, with love's
incuriosity, he had hitherto been heedless—such as her solitary life with her
father, at whose house no one apparently was an acceptable visitor, and
her strange fear of the night by which those who knew her best accounted for
her never being seen after dark. Surely in such a mind imagination once kindled
might burn with a lawless flame, penetrating and enveloping the entire
structure. That she was mad, though the conviction gave him the acutest pain,
he could no longer doubt; she had only mistaken an effect of her mental
disorder for its cause, bringing into imaginary relation with her own
personality the vagaries of the local myth-makers. With some vague intention of
testing his new "theory," and no very definite notion of how to set
about it he said gravely, but with hesitation:
"Irene, dear, tell
me—I beg you will not take offense, but tell me—"
"I have told
you," she interrupted, speaking with a passionate earnestness that he had
not known her to show, "I have already told you that we cannot marry; is
anything else worth saying?"
Before he could stop her
she had sprung from her seat and without another word or look was gliding away
among the trees toward her father's house. Brading had risen to detain her; he
stood watching her in silence until she had vanished in the gloom. Suddenly he
started as if he had been shot, his face took on an expression of amazement and
alarm: in one of the black shadows into which she had disappeared he had caught
a quick, brief glimpse of shining eyes! For an instant he was dazed and
irresolute; then he dashed into the wood after her, shouting, "Irene,
Irene, look out! The panther! The panther!"
In a moment he had
passed through the fringe of forest into open ground and saw the girl's
gray skirt vanishing into her father's door. No panther was visible.
IV.AN APPEAL TO THE CONSCIENCE OF GOD
Jenner Brading,
attorney-at-law, lived in a cottage at the edge of the town. Directly behind
the dwelling was the forest. Being a bachelor, and therefore by the Draconian moral
code of the time and place denied the services of the only species of domestic
servant known thereabout, the "hired girl," he boarded at the village
hotel where also was his office. The woodside cottage was merely a lodging
maintained—at no great cost, to be sure—as an evidence of prosperity and
respectability. It would hardly do for one to whom the local newspaper had
pointed with pride as "the foremost jurist of his time" to be
"homeless," albeit he may sometimes have suspected that the words
"home" and "house" were not strictly synonymous. Indeed,
his consciousness of the disparity and his will to harmonize it were matters of
logical inference, for it was generally reported that soon after the cottage
was built its owner had made a futile venture in the direction of marriage—had,
in truth, gone so far as to be rejected by the beautiful but eccentric daughter
of Old Man Marlowe, the recluse. This was publicly believed because he had told
it himself and she had not—a reversal of the usual order of things which could
hardly fail to carry conviction.
Brading's bedroom was at
the rear of the house, with a single window facing the forest. One night
he was awakened by a noise at that window—he could hardly have said what it was
like. With a little thrill of the nerves he sat up in bed and laid hold of the
revolver which, with a forethought most commendable in one addicted to the
habit of sleeping on the ground floor with an open window, he had put under his
pillow. The room was in absolute darkness, but being unterrified he knew where
to direct his eyes, and there he held them, awaiting in silence what further
might occur. He could now dimly discern the aperture—a square of lighter black.
Presently there appeared at its lower edge two gleaming eyes that burned with a
malignant luster inexpressibly terrible! Brading's heart gave a great jump,
then seemed to stand still. A chill passed along his spine and through his
hair; he felt the blood forsake his cheeks. He could not have cried out—not to
save his life; but being a man of courage he would not, to save his life, have
done so if he had been able. Some trepidation his coward body might feel, but
his spirit was of sterner stuff. Slowly the shining eyes rose with a steady
motion that seemed an approach, and slowly rose Brading's right hand, holding
the pistol. He fired!
Blinded by the flash and
stunned by the report, Brading nevertheless heard, or fancied that he heard,
the wild high scream of the panther, so human in sound, so devilish in
suggestion. Leaping from the bed he hastily clothed himself and pistol in hand,
sprang from the door, meeting two or three men who came running up from the
road. A brief explanation was followed by a cautious search of the house. The
grass was wet with dew; beneath the window it had been trodden and partly
leveled for a wide space, from which a devious trail, visible in the light of a
lantern, led away into the bushes. One of the men stumbled and fell upon his
hands, which as he rose and rubbed them together were slippery. On examination
they were seen to be red with blood.
An encounter, unarmed,
with a wounded panther was not agreeable to their taste; all but Brading turned
back. He, with lantern and pistol, pushed courageously forward into the wood.
Passing through a difficult undergrowth he came into a small opening, and there
his courage had its reward, for there he found the body of his victim. But it
was no panther. What it was is told, even to this day, upon a weather-worn
headstone in the village churchyard, and for many years was attested daily at
the graveside by the bent figure and sorrow-seamed face of Old Man Marlowe, to
whose soul, and to the soul of his strange, unhappy child, peace—peace and
reparation.
10.PHOTOGRAPHING INVISIBLE BEINGS
By
Wm. T. Stead
"Millions of
Spiritual creatures walk the earthUnseen, both when we wake and when we
sleep."
—Milton
It was during the South
African War that my father obtained one of his best authenticated spirit
photographs, so I think that it is well to give here his own account of his
experiments in that direction. He writes:
"While recording
the results at which I have arrived, I wish to repudiate any desire to
dogmatize as to their significance or their origin. I merely record the facts,
and although I may indicate conclusions and inferences which I have drawn from
them, I attach no importance to anything but the facts themselves.
"There is living in
London at the present moment an old man of seventy-one years of age, a man of
no education; he can write, but he cannot spell, and he has for many years
earned his living as a photographer. He was always in a small way of business,
a quiet, inoffensive man who brought up his family respectably, and lived in
peace with his neighbors, attracting no particular remark....
"When he started in
business as a photographer it was in the days when the wet process was
almost universal, and he was much annoyed by finding that when he exposed
plates other forms than that of the sitter would appear in the background. So
many plates were spoiled by these unwelcome intruders that his partner became
very angry, and insisted that the plates had not been washed before they were
used. He protested this was not so, and asked his partner to bring a packet of
completely new plates with which he would take a photograph and see what was
the result. His partner accepted the challenge, and produced a plate which had
never previously been used; but when the portrait of the next sitter was taken,
there appeared a shadow form in the background. Angry and frightened at this
unwelcome appearance he flung the plate to the ground with an oath, and from
that time for very many years he was never again troubled by an occurrence of
similar phenomena.
"About ten years
ago he became interested in spiritualism, and to his surprise, and also to his
regret, the shadow figures began to re-appear on the background of the
photographs. He repeatedly had to destroy negatives and ask his customer to
give him another sitting. It did his business harm, and in order to avoid this
annoyance he left most of the photographing to his son.
"I happened to hear
of these curious experiences of his and sought him out. I found him very
reluctant to speak about the matter. He said frankly he did not know how the
figures came; it had been a great annoyance to him, and it gave his shop a bad
name. He did not wish anything to be said about the matter. In deference,
however, to repeated pressing on my part, he consented to make experiments
with me, and I had at various times a considerable number of sittings.
"At first I brought
my own plates (half plate size). He allowed me to place them in his slide in
the dark room, to put them in the camera, which I was allowed to turn
inside-out, and after they were exposed I was permitted to go into the dark
room and develop them in his presence. Under these conditions I repeatedly
obtained pictures of persons who were certainly not visible to me in the
studio. I was allowed to do almost anything that I pleased, to alter the background,
to change the position of the camera, to sit at any angle that I chose—in short
to act as if the studio and all belonging to it was my own. And I repeatedly
obtained what the old photographer called 'shadow pictures,' but none of them
bore any resemblance to any person whom I had known.
"In all these
earlier experiments the photographer, whom I will call Mr. B——, made no charge,
and the only request that he made was that I should not publish his name, or do
anything to let his neighbors know of the curious shadow pictures which were
obtainable in his studio.
"After a time I was
so thoroughly satisfied that the shadow photographs, or spirit forms, were not
produced by any fraud on the part of the photographer, that I did not trouble
to bring my own marked plates—I allowed him to use his own, and to do all the
work of loading the slide and of developing the plate without my assistance or
supervision. What I wanted was to see whether it would be possible for me to
obtain a photograph of any person known to me in life who has passed over
to the other side. The production of one such picture, if the person was
unknown to the photographer, and he had no means of obtaining the photograph of
the original while on earth, seemed to me so much better a test of the
genuineness of the phenomena than could be secured by any amount of personal
supervision of the process of photography, that I left him to operate without
interference. The results he obtained when left to himself were precisely the
same as those when the slides passed only through my own hands. But, although I
obtained a great variety of portraits of unknown persons, I got none whom I
could recognize.
"In a conversation
with Mr. B— as to how these shadow pictures, as he called them, came on the plate,
I found him almost as much at sea as myself. He said that he did not know how
they came, but that he had noticed that they came more frequently and with
greater distinctness at some times than at others. He could never say
beforehand whether they would come or not. He frequently informed me when my
sitting began that he could guarantee nothing. And often the set of plates
would bear no trace of any portrait save mine.
"He was very
reluctant to continue the experiments, and used to complain that after exposing
four plates with a view to obtaining such pictures he felt quite exhausted. And
sometimes he complained that his 'innards seemed to be turned upside-down,' to
use his own phrase. I usually sat with him between two and three in the
afternoon, and on the days which I came he always abstained from the usual
glass of beer which he took with his midday meal. If I came unexpectedly, and
he had had a single glass of beer, which formed his usual beverage, he
would always assure me that I need not expect any good results. I, however,
never found any particular difference in the results.
"We often discussed
the matter together. And he was evidently working out a theory of his own, as
any one might under such circumstances. He knew that when he was excited or
irritated he got bad results. Hence he often used to keep a music-box going,
for the music, in his opinion, tended to set up good and tranquil conditions.
He said he thought something must come out of him—what, he did not know, but
something was taken out of him, and with this something he thought the
entities, whoever they were, built themselves up and acquired sufficient
substance to reflect the rays of light so as to impress the sensitive plate in
his camera. He also thought that his old camera had become what he called
magnetized, and although it was an old-fashioned piece of furniture, which I
not only examined myself, but have had examined by expert photographers,
nothing could be discovered within or without it which would account for the
results obtained. He also was of the opinion that even although he did not
touch the photographic plate, it was necessary for him to touch or to hold his
hand over the photographic slide, and also to hold his hand over the plate when
it was in the developing bath. His theory was that in some way or other this
process magnetized the plate and brought out a shadow portrait.
"One peculiarity of
almost all the shadow pictures obtained in all these series of experiments is
that they have around them the same kind of white drapery which is so familiar
to those who have taken part in a materializing séance. Sometimes this
drapery is more voluminous than at others; often, when the conditions are good,
the form which at first appears with its head encompassed with drapery will
appear on the second plate without any drapery. On asking Mr. B— what
explanation he could give for this, he said he did not know, but he believed
that the bodily appearance assumed by the spirit was very sensitive and needed
to be shielded from currents, which might harm it. But when harmony prevailed
they could venture to remove the drapery, and be photographed without it.
Whatever may be the value of Mr. B—'s theory, there is little doubt that
something is given off from his body which can be photographed. The white mist
that appears to emanate from him forms into cloudy folds out of which there
protrudes a more or less clearly defined face with human features. Sometimes
this white and misty cloud obscures the sitter, at other times it seems to be
condensed as if it were in the process of being worked up into a definite form
for the completion of which either time or some other conditions were lacking.
It was also noticeable that the entity—whoever it may be—which builds up the
form, who is giving off sufficient solidity to impress its image upon the plate
in the camera, having once created a form, will use it repeatedly without any
change of position or expression. This will no doubt seem a great
stumbling-block to many. But the fact is as I have stated it, and our first
business is to ascertain facts, whether they tell for or against any particular
hypothesis. It may be that the disembodied spirit, in order to establish its
identity, constructs, out of the 'aura' given off by the photographer or other medium,
a mask or cast bearing the unmistakable resemblance to the body which it wore
in its sojourn on earth. Having once built it up for use in the studio, it may
be easier to employ the same cast again and again instead of building up a new
one at each fresh sitting. Upon this point, however, I shall have something to
say further on.
"I was very much
interested in the results I obtained, although as none of the photographs were
identified I did not deem the experiment completely successful. I was very
anxious to induce Mr. B— to devote some months to an uninterrupted series of
experiments, and asked him on what terms I could secure his services. But he
absolutely refused; he said he did not like it, it made him unwell, made people
speak ill of him, and it did not matter what terms were offered, he would not
consent. He was an old man, he said, and he could not find out how these things
came; and, in short, neither scientific curiosity nor financial consideration
would induce him to consent to more than an occasional sitting. I therefore
dropped the matter, and for some years I discontinued my experiments.
"I had a friend who
often accompanied me to Mr. B—'s studio, where she had been photographed both
with and without shadow pictures appearing on the background. We often promised
each other that if either of us passed over we would come back and be
photographed by Mr. B— if possible, in order to prove the reality of spirit
return. Shortly after this my friend died. But it was not until nearly four
years after her death, at the request of a friend who was very anxious to know
whether she could communicate with those on the other side, that I went
back to Mr. B—'s studio.
"He had always been
slightly clairvoyant and clairaudient. He told me that a few days before I had
written asking for the appointment, my deceased friend had appeared in the
studio and told him that I was coming. This reminded me of her promise, and I
said at once that I hoped he would be able to photograph her. He said he didn't
know; he was rather frightened of her, for reasons into which I need not enter,
but if she came he would see what he could do. My friend and I sat together.
The first plate was exposed, nothing appeared in the background. When the
second plate was placed in the camera Mr. B— nodded with a quick look of
recognition. We saw nothing. After he had exposed the second plate and before
he developed it he asked us to change seats. We did this, and as he was
exposing the third plate he said, 'I am told to ask you to do this,' and then
when he closed the shutter he said, 'it is Mrs. M—.' On the fourth plate there
appeared a picture of a woman whom I had never seen before, and whom my friend
had never seen, neither had Mr. B—. When the plates came to be developed I
found the second and third plates contained unmistakable likenesses of my
friend Mrs. M—. These portraits were immediately recognized by my friend as
unmistakable likenesses of the deceased Mrs. M—. It will be objected that she
had frequently been photographed by the same photographer, and that he had
simply faked a photograph from one of his old negatives. I don't believe that
this is possible, for these portraits, although recognized immediately by every
one who knew her, including her nearest relative, are quite different from any
photograph she ever had taken in life. She certainly never was
photographed enveloped in white drapery, nor do I believe that Mr. B— had any
negative of any of her portraits in his possession. But I fully admit that from
the point of view of one who wishes to exclude every possibility of error, the
fact that Mrs. M— had been frequently photographed in her lifetime by the same
photographer renders it impossible to regard these photographs as conclusive
testimony as to their authenticity as a photograph of a form assumed by a
disembodied spirit. I have mentioned that on the fourth plate there appeared a
portrait of an unknown female. On my return I was showing the print of this
shadow picture to a friend when she startled me by declaring that the shrouded
form which appeared behind me in the photograph was a portrait of her mother
who had died some months before in Dublin. I had never seen her mother, my
friend did not know of her existence, neither did the photographer, nor does he
to this day. It was only many months afterwards that I was able to obtain a
photograph of my friend's mother, but it was taken when she was a comparatively
young woman and bore no manner of resemblance to the portrait of the lady who
appeared behind me. Her daughter, however, had not the slightest hesitation in
asserting that it was her mother, that she had recognized her instantly, and
that it was a very good portrait of her as she appeared in the later years of
her life. This startled me not a little, and convinced me that I had a good
prospect of attaining some definite results as an outcome of my experiments.
"Mr. B—, encouraged
by this success, was willing to continue his experiments, and this time I
insisted upon paying him for his work.
"From this time
onward the occurrence of photographs that were recognizable on the background
of the photographs taken by Mr. B— became frequent. Sometimes the plates were
marked; but not invariably. For my part I attach comparatively no importance to
the marking of plates and the close supervision of the operator. The test of
the genuineness of a photograph that is obtained when the unknown relative of
an unknown sitter appears in the background of the photograph, is immeasurably
superior to precautions any expert conjurer or trick photographer might evade.
Again and again I sent friends to Mr. B—, giving him no information as to who
they were, nor telling him anything as to the identity of the persons' deceased
friend or relative whose portrait they wished to secure; and time and again
when the negative was developed the portrait would appear in the background, or
sometimes in front of the sitter. This occurred so frequently that I am quite
convinced of the impossibility of any fraud. One time it was a French editor,
who finding the portrait of his deceased wife appear on the negative when
developed, was so transported with delight that he insisted on kissing the
photographer, Mr. B—, much to the old man's embarrassment. On another occasion
it was a Lancashire engineer, himself a photographer, who took marked plates
and all possible precautions. He obtained portraits of two of his relatives and
another of an eminent personage with whom he had been in close relations. Or
again, it was a near neighbor, who, going as a total stranger to the
studio, obtained the portrait of her deceased daughter.
"I attach no
importance whatever to the appearance of portraits of well-known personages,
which might easily be copied from existing pictures, but I attach immense
importance to the production of the spirit photographs of unknown relatives of
sitters who are unknown to the photographer, who receives them solely as a lady
or gentleman who is one of my friends.
"Although, as I
have said, I do not attach much importance to photographs appearing of
well-known men, I confess that I was rather impressed by one of my most recent
experiments. I received a message from a medium in Sheffield, who is unknown to
me, saying that Cecil Rhodes, who had then been dead about nine months, had
spoken to her clairaudiently, and had told her to ask me to go to the
photographer's, and that he would come and be photographed. The medium was a
stranger to me, and I confess that I received the message with considerable
skepticism. However, when she came up to town I accompanied her to the studio.
She declared that she saw Cecil Rhodes, and that he spoke to her, and that he
was standing behind me when the plate was exposed. When the plate came to be
developed, although there was one well-defined figure standing behind me and
several other faces half visible in the background, there was no portrait of
Cecil Rhodes. I was not surprised, and went away. A month afterwards I went to
have another sitting with the photographer. I chatted with him for a short
time, and then he left the room for a moment. When he came back he said to me:
'There is a round-faced well set-up man here with a short moustache and a
dimple in his chin. Do you know him?' 'No,' I said, 'I don't know any such man.'
'Well, he seems to be very busy about you.' 'Well,' I said, 'if he comes
upstairs, we shall see what we can get.' 'I don't know,' said he. When I was
sitting, he said, 'There he is, and I see the letter R. Is it Robert or
Richard, do you think?' 'I don't know any Robert or Richard,' I said. He took
the picture. He then proceeded with the second plate, and said, 'That man is
still here, and I see behind him a country road. I wonder what that means.' He
went into the dark room, and presently came out and said, 'I see "road or
roads." Do you know any one of that name?' 'Of course,' I said, 'Cecil
Rhodes.' 'Do you mean him as died in the Transvaal lately?' said he. I said
'Yes.' 'Well,' he said, 'was he a man like that?' 'Well, he had a moustache,' I
said. And sure enough, when the plate was developed, there was Cecil Rhodes
looking fifteen years younger than when he died.
"Some other plates
were exposed. One was entirely blank, on two others the mist was formed into a
kind of clot of light, but no figure was visible, the fifth had a portrait of
an unknown man, and on the sixth, when it came to be developed, there was the
same portrait of Cecil Rhodes that had appeared on the first, but without the
white drapery round the head.
"Of course it may
be said that it was well known that I was connected with Cecil Rhodes and that
the photographer therefore would have no difficulty in faking a portrait. I
admit all that, and therefore I would not have introduced this if it had stood
alone, as any evidence showing that it was a bona fide photograph
of an invisible being. But it does not stand alone, and I have almost
every reason to believe in the almost stupid honesty, if I may use such a
phrase, of the photographer. I am naturally much interested in these latest
portraits of the African Colossus. They are, at any rate, entirely new, no such
portraits, to the best of my knowledge—and I have made a collection of all I
can lay my hands on—exactly resembling those portraits which I obtained at Mr.
B—'s studio.
"I will conclude
the account of my experiments by telling how I secured a portrait under
circumstances which preclude any possibility of fake or fraud. One day when I
entered the studio, Mr. B— said to me, 'There is a man come with you who has
been here before; he came here some days ago when I was by myself; he looked
very wild, and he had a gun in his hand, and I did not like the look of him. I
don't like guns, so I asked him to go away, for I was frightened of the gun,
and he went. But now he has come with you, and he has not got his gun any more,
so we will let him stop.' I was rather amused at the old man's story and said,
'Well, see if you can photograph him.' 'I don't know as I can,' he said, 'I
never know what I can get,'—which is quite true, for often the photographs
which he says he sees clairvoyantly do not come out on the plate. While he was
photographing me, I said to him, 'If you can tell this man to go away, you can
ask him his name.' 'Yes,' said he. 'Will you do so?' I said. 'Yes,' he said.
After seeming to ask the question mentally, he said, 'He says his name is Piet
Botha.' 'Piet Botha,' I said, 'I know no such name. There are Louis and Philip,
and Chris Botha. I have never heard of Piet; still they are a numerous
family and there are plenty of Bothas in South Africa, and it will be
interesting to ask General Botha, when he arrives, whether he knows of any Piet
Botha.' When the negative was developed, sure enough there appeared behind me a
photograph of a stalwart bearded person, who might have been a Boer or a
Russian moujik, but who was certainly unknown to me. I had never seen a
portrait of any one which bore any resemblance to the photograph.
"When General Botha
arrived I did not get an opportunity of asking him about the photograph, but
some time afterwards I asked Mr. Fischer, one of the delegation from the South
African Republics, to look at the photograph, and if he got an opportunity to
ask General Botha if he knew of such a man as Piet Botha. Mr. Fischer said he
thought he had seen the face before, but he could not be certain. He departed
with the photograph. Some days afterwards Mr. Wessels, a member of the
delegation with Mr. Fischer, came down to my office. He said, 'I want to know
about that photograph that you gave Mr. Fischer.' 'Yes,' I said, 'what about
it?' 'I want to know where you got it.' I told him. He replied disdainfully, 'I
don't believe in such things; it is superstition; besides, that man didn't know
Mr. B—; he has never been in London; how could he come there?' 'What,' I said,
'do you know him?' 'Know him!' said Mr. Wessels. 'He is my brother-in-law.'
'Really!' I said. 'What did they call him?' 'Pietrus Johannes Botha, but we
always called him Piet for short.' 'Is he dead, then?' I said. 'Yes,' said Mr.
Wessels, 'he was the first Boer officer who was killed in the siege of
Kimberley; but there is a mystery about this; you didn't know him?' 'No,'
I said. 'And never heard of him?' 'No,' I said. 'But,' he said, 'I have the
man's portrait in my house in South Africa, how could you get it?' 'But,' I
said, 'I never have had it.' 'I don't understand,' he said, moodily, and so
departed. I afterwards showed the photograph to another Free-State Boer who
knew Piet Botha very well, and he had not the slightest hesitation in declaring
that it was an unmistakable likeness of his dead friend.[8]
"This is a plain,
straightforward narrative of my experiences; they are still going on. But if I
continue them forever I don't see how I am going to obtain better results than
those which I have already secured. At the same time I must admit that when I
have taken my own kodak to the studio and taken a photograph immediately before
Mr. B— had exposed his plate, I got no results. The same failure occurred with
another photographer whom I took, who took his own camera and his own plates,
and took a photograph immediately before and immediately after Mr. B— had
exposed his plate, and secured no result. Mr. B—'s explanation of this is that
he thinks he does in some way or other magnetize, as he terms it, the
plate, and that there is some effluence from his hand which is as necessary for
the development of the psychic figure as the developing liquid is for the
development of an ordinary photograph. This explanation would no doubt be
derided as, I presume, wiseacres would have derided the first photographers
when they insisted upon the necessity of darkness whilst developing their
plates. What I hold to be established is that in the presence of this
particular individual, Mr. B—, who at present is the only person known to me
who is able to produce these photographs, it is possible to obtain under test
conditions photographs that are unmistakably portraits of deceased persons; the
said deceased persons being entirely unknown to him, and in some cases equally
unknown to the sitter. Neither was any portrait of such person accessible
either to the sitter or the photographer; neither was either the sitter or the
photographer conscious of the very existence of these persons, whose identity
was subsequently recognized by their friends.[9]
"I am willing to
admit that no conceivable conditions in the way of marking plates and
supervising the actions or the operations of the photographer are of the least
use, in so much as an expert conjurer can easily deceive the eye of the
unskilled observer. But what I do maintain is that it is impossible for the
cleverest trick photographer and the ablest conjurer in the world to produce a
photograph, at a moment's notice, of an unknown relative of an unknown sitter,
this portrait to be unmistakably recognizable by all survivors who knew
the original in life. This Mr. B— has done again and again. And it seems to me
that a great step has been made towards establishing the possibility of
verifying by photography the reality of the existence of other intelligences
than our own."
The photographer alluded
to in this article is Mr. Boursnell. He died shortly after it was written, and
although father experimented with others, he never obtained such convincing and
satisfactory results.
By
Fiona Macleod
Sin.
Taste this bread, this
substance: tell meIs it bread or flesh?
[The Senses approach.]
The
Smell.
Its smellIs the smell of
bread.
Sin.
Touch, come. Why
tremble?Say what's this thou touchest?
The
Touch.
Bread.
Sin.
Sight, declare what thou
discernestIn this object.
The
Sight.
Bread alone.
—Calderon,Los Encantos de la Culpa
A wet wind out of the
south mazed and mooned through the sea-mist that hung over the Ross. In all the
bays and creeks was a continuous weary lapping of water. There was no other
sound anywhere.
Thus was it at daybreak;
it was thus at noon; thus was it now in the darkening of the day. A confused
thrusting and falling of sounds through the silence betokened the hour of the
setting. Curlews wailed in the mist; on the seething limpet-covered rocks the
skuas and terns screamed, or uttered hoarse, rasping cries. Ever and again
the prolonged note of the oyster-catcher shrilled against the air, as an echo
flying blindly along a blank wall of cliff. Out of weedy places, wherein the
tide sobbed with long, gurgling moans, came at intervals the barking of a seal.
Inland, by the hamlet of
Contullich, there is a reedy tarn called the Loch-a-chaoruinn.[10] By
the shores of this mournful water a man moved. It was a slow, weary walk that
of the man Neil Ross. He had come from Duninch, thirty miles to the eastward,
and had not rested foot, nor eaten, nor had word of man or woman, since his
going west an hour after dawn.
At the bend of the loch
nearest the clachan he came upon an old woman carrying peat. To his reiterated
question as to where he was, and if the tarn were Feur-Lochan above Fionnaphort
that is on the strait of Iona on the west side of the Ross of Mull, she did not
at first make any answer. The rain trickled down her withered brown face, over
which the thin gray locks hung limply. It was only in the deep-set eyes that
the flame of life still glimmered, though that dimly.
The man had used the
English when first he spoke, but as though mechanically. Supposing that he had
not been understood, he repeated his question in the Gaelic.
After a minute's silence
the old woman answered him in the native tongue, but only to put a question in
return.
"I am thinking it
is a long time since you have been in Iona?"
The man stirred
uneasily.
"And why is that,
mother?" he asked, in a weak voice hoarse with damp and fatigue; "how
is it you will be knowing that I have been in Iona at all?"
"Because I knew
your kith and kin there, Neil Ross."
"I have not been
hearing that name, mother, for many a long year. And as for the old face o'
you, it is unbeknown to me."
"I was at the
naming of you, for all that. Well do I remember the day that Silis Macallum
gave you birth; and I was at the house on the croft of Ballyrona when Murtagh
Ross—that was your father—laughed. It was an ill laughing that."
"I am knowing it.
The curse of God on him!"
"'Tis not the
first, nor the last, though the grass is on his head three years agone now."
"You that know who
I am will be knowing that I have no kith or kin now on Iona?"
"Ay; they are all
under gray stone or running wave. Donald your brother, and Murtagh your next
brother, and little Silis, and your mother Silis herself, and your two brothers
of your father, Angus and Ian Macallum, and your father Murtagh Ross, and his
lawful childless wife, Dionaid, and his sister Anna—one and all, they lie
beneath the green wave or in the brown mould. It is said there is a curse upon
all who live at Ballyrona. The owl builds now in the rafters, and it is the big
sea-rat that runs across the fireless hearth."
"It is there I am
going."
"The foolishness is
on you, Neil Ross."
"Now it is that I
am knowing who you are. It is old Sheen Macarthur I am speaking to."
"Tha mise ... it is
I."
"And you will be
alone now, too, I am thinking, Sheen?"
"I am alone. God
took my three boys at the one fishing ten years ago; and before there was
moonrise in the blackness of my heart my man went. It was after the drowning of
Anndra that my croft was taken from me. Then I crossed the Sound, and shared
with my widow sister Elsie McVurie till she went; and then the
two cows had to go; and I had no rent, and was old."
In the silence that
followed, the rain dribbled from the sodden bracken and dripping loneroid. Big
tears rolled slowly down the deep lines on the face of Sheen. Once there was a
sob in her throat, but she put her shaking hand to it, and it was still.
Neil Ross shifted from
foot to foot. The ooze in that marshy place squelched with each restless
movement he made. Beyond them a plover wheeled, a blurred splatch in the mist,
crying its mournful cry over and over and over.
It was a pitiful thing
to hear—ah, bitter loneliness, bitter patience of poor old women. That he knew
well. But he was too weary, and his heart was nigh full of its own burthen. The
words could not come to his lips. But at last he spoke.
"Tha mo chridhe
goirt," he said, with tears in his voice, as he put his hand on her bent
shoulder; "my heart is sore."
She put up her old face
against his.
"'S tha e ruidhinn
mo chridhe," she whispered; "it is touching my heart you are."
After that they walked
on slowly through the dripping mist, each dumb and brooding deep.
"Where will you be
staying this night?" asked Sheen suddenly, when they had traversed a wide
boggy stretch of land; adding, as by an afterthought—"Ah, it is asking you
were if the tarn there were Feur-Lochan. No; it is Loch-a-chaoruinn, and the
clachan that is near is Contullich."
"Which way?"
"Yonder, to the
right."
"And you are not
going there?"
"No. I am going to
the steading of Andrew Blair. Maybe you are for knowing it? It is called the
Baile-na-Chlais-nambuidheag."[11]
"I do not remember.
But it is remembering a Blair I am. He was Adam, the son of Adam, the son of
Robert. He and my father did many an ill deed together."
"Ay, to the stones
be it said. Sure, now, there was, even till this weary day, no man or woman who
had a good word for Adam Blair."
"And why that ...
why till this day?"
"It is not yet the
third hour since he went into the silence."
Neil Ross uttered a
sound like a stifled curse. For a time he trudged wearily on.
"Then I am too late,"
he said at last, but as though speaking to himself. "I had hoped to see
him face to face again, and curse him between the eyes. It was he who made
Murtagh Ross break his troth to my mother, and marry that other woman, barren
at that, God be praised! And they say ill of him, do they?"
"Ay, it is evil
that is upon him. This crime and that, God knows; and the shadow of murder on
his brow and in his eyes. Well, well, 'tis ill to be speaking of a man in
corpse, and that near by. 'Tis Himself only that knows, Neil Ross."
"Maybe ay and maybe
no. But where is it that I can be sleeping this night, Sheen Macarthur?"
"They will not be
taking a stranger at the farm this night of the nights, I am thinking. There is
no place else for seven miles yet, when there is the clachan, before you will
be coming to Fionnaphort. There is the warm byre, Neil, my man; or, if you can
bide by my peats, you may rest, and welcome, though there is no bed for you,
and no food either save some of the porridge that is over."
"And that will do
well enough for me, Sheen; and Himself bless you for it."
And so it was.
000
After old Sheen
Macarthur had given the wayfarer food—poor food at that, but welcome to one
nigh starved, and for the heartsome way it was given, and because of the thanks
to God that was upon it before even spoon was lifted—she told him a lie. It was
the good lie of tender love.
"Sure now, after
all, Neil, my man," she said, "it is sleeping at the farm I ought to
be, for Maisie Macdonald, the wise woman, will be sitting by the corpse, and
there will be none to keep her company. It is there I must be going; and if I
am weary, there is a good bed for me just beyond the dead-board, which I
am not minding at all. So, if it is tired you are sitting by the peats, lie
down on my bed there, and have the sleep; and God be with you."
With that she went, and
soundlessly, for Neil Ross was already asleep, where he sat on an upturned
claar, with his elbows on his knees, and his flame-lit face in his hands.
The rain had ceased; but
the mist still hung over the land, though in thin veils now, and these slowly
drifting seaward. Sheen stepped wearily along the stony path that led from her
bothy to the farm-house. She stood still once, the fear upon her, for she saw
three or four blurred yellow gleams moving beyond her, eastward, along the
dyke. She knew what they were—the corpse-lights that on the night of death go
between the bier and the place of burial. More than once she had seen them
before the last hour, and by that token had known the end to be near.
Good Catholic that she
was, she crossed herself, and took heart. Then muttering
"Crois nan naoi
aingeal leam'O mhullach mo chinnGu craican mo bhonn."
(The cross of the nine
angels be about me,From the top of my headTo the soles of my feet),
she went on her way
fearlessly.
When she came to the
White House, she entered by the milk-shed that was between the byre and
the kitchen. At the end of it was a paved place, with washing-tubs. At one of
these stood a girl that served in the house—an ignorant lass called Jessie
McFall, out of Oban. She was ignorant, indeed, not to know that to wash clothes
with a newly dead body near by was an ill thing to do. Was it not a matter for
the knowing that the corpse could hear, and might rise up in the night and
clothe itself in a clean white shroud?
She was still speaking
to the lassie when Maisie Macdonald, the deid-watcher, opened the door of the
room behind the kitchen to see who it was that was come. The two old women
nodded silently. It was not till Sheen was in the closed room, midway in which
something covered with a sheet lay on a board, that any word was spoken.
"Duit sìth mòr,
Beann Macdonald."
"And deep peace to
you, too, Sheen; and to him that is there."
"Och, ochone, mise
'n diugh; 'tis a dark hour this."
"Ay; it is bad.
Will you have been hearing or seeing anything?"
"Well, as for that,
I am thinking I saw lights moving betwixt here and the green place over
there."
"The
corpse-lights?"
"Well, it is
calling them that they are."
"I thought they
would be out. And I have been hearing the noise of the planks—the cracking of
the boards, you know, that will be used for the coffin to-morrow."
A long silence followed.
The old women had seated themselves by the corpse, their cloaks over their
heads. The room was fireless, and was lit only by a tall wax death-candle,
kept against the hour of the going.
At last Sheen began
swaying slowly to and fro, crooning low the while. "I would not be for
doing that, Sheen Macarthur," said the deid-watcher in a low voice, but
meaningly; adding, after a moment's pause, "The mice have all left the
house."
Sheen sat upright, a
look half of terror, half of awe in her eyes.
"God save the
sinful soul that is hiding," she whispered.
Well she knew what Maisie
meant. If the soul of the dead be a lost soul it knows its doom. The house of
death is the house of sanctuary; but before the dawn that follows the
death-night the soul must go forth, whosoever or whatsoever wait for it in the
homeless, shelterless plains of air around and beyond. If it be well with the
soul, it need have no fear; if it be not ill with the soul, it may fare forth
with surety; but if it be ill with the soul, ill will the going be. Thus is it
that the spirit of an evil man cannot stay, and yet dare not go; and so it
strives to hide itself in secret places anywhere, in dark channels and blind
walls; and the wise creatures that live near man smell the terror, and flee.
Maisie repeated the saying of Sheen, then, after a silence, added:
"Adam Blair will
not lie in his grave for a year and a day because of the sins that are upon
him; and it is knowing that, they are here. He will be the Watcher of the Dead
for a year and a day."
"Ay, sure, there
will be dark prints in the dawn-dew over yonder."
Once more the old women
relapsed into silence. Through the night there was a sighing sound. It was not
the sea, which was too far off to be heard save in a day of storm. The wind it
was, that was dragging itself across the sodden moors like a wounded thing,
moaning and sighing.
Out of sheer weariness,
Sheen twice rocked forward from her stool, heavy with sleep. At last Maisie led
her over to the niche-bed opposite, and laid her down there, and waited till
the deep furrows in the face relaxed somewhat, and the thin breath labored slow
across the fallen jaw.
"Poor old
woman," she muttered, heedless of her own gray hairs and grayer years;
"a bitter, bad thing it is to be old, old and weary. 'Tis the sorrow,
that. God keep the pain of it!"
As for herself, she did
not sleep at all that night, but sat between the living and the dead, with her
plaid shrouding her. Once, when Sheen gave a low, terrified scream in her
sleep, she rose, and in a loud voice cried, "Sheeach-ad! Away with you!"
And with that she lifted the shroud from the dead man, and took the pennies off
the eyelids, and lifted each lid; then, staring into these filmed wells,
muttered an ancient incantation that would compel the soul of Adam Blair to
leave the spirit of Sheen alone, and return to the cold corpse that was its
coffin till the wood was ready.
The dawn came at last.
Sheen slept, and Adam Blair slept a deeper sleep, and Maisie stared out of her
wan, weary eyes against the red and stormy flares of light that came into the
sky.
When, an hour after
sunrise, Sheen Macarthur reached her bothy, she found Neil Ross, heavy
with slumber, upon her bed. The fire was not out, though no flame or spark was
visible; but she stooped and blew at the heart of the peats till the redness
came, and once it came it grew. Having done this, she kneeled and said a rune
of the morning, and after that a prayer, and then a prayer for the poor man
Neil. She could pray no more because of the tears. She rose and put the meal
and water into the pot for the porridge to be ready against his awaking. One of
the hens that was there came and pecked at her ragged skirt. "Poor
beastie," she said. "Sure, that will just be the way I am pulling at
the white robe of the Mother o' God. 'Tis a bit meal for you, cluckie, and for
me a healing hand upon my tears. O, och, ochone, the tears, the tears!"
It was not till the
third hour after sunrise of that bleak day in that winter of the winters, that
Neil Ross stirred and arose. He ate in silence. Once he said that he smelt the
snow coming out of the north. Sheen said no word at all.
After the porridge, he
took his pipe, but there was no tobacco. All that Sheen had was the pipeful she
kept against the gloom of the Sabbath. It was her one solace in the long weary
week. She gave him this, and held a burning peat to his mouth, and hungered
over the thin, rank smoke that curled upward.
It was within
half-an-hour of noon that, after an absence, she returned.
"Not between you
and me, Neil Ross," she began abruptly, "but just for the asking, and
what is beyond. Is it any money you are having upon you?"
"No."
"Nothing?"
"Nothing."
"Then how will you
be getting across to Iona? It is seven long miles to Fionnaphort, and bitter
cold at that, and you will be needing food, and then the ferry, the ferry
across the Sound, you know."
"Ay, I know."
"What would you do
for a silver piece, Neil, my man?"
"You have none to
give me, Sheen Macarthur; and, if you had, it would not be taking it I
would."
"Would you kiss a
dead man for a crown-piece—a crown-piece of five good shillings?"
Neil Ross stared. Then
he sprang to his feet.
"It is Adam Blair
you are meaning, woman! God curse him in death now that he is no longer in
life!"
Then, shaking and
trembling, he sat down again, and brooded against the dull red glow of the
peats.
But, when he rose, in
the last quarter before noon, his face was white.
"The dead are dead,
Sheen Macarthur. They can know or do nothing. I will do it. It is willed. Yes,
I am going up to the house there. And now I am going from here. God Himself has
my thanks to you, and my blessing too. They will come back to you. It is not
forgetting you I will be. Good-bye."
"Good-bye, Neil,
son of the woman that was my friend. A south wind to you! Go up by the farm. In
the front of the house you will see what you will be seeing. Maisie Macdonald
will be there. She will tell you what's for the telling. There is no harm in
it, sure; sure, the dead are dead. It is praying for you I will be, Neil
Ross. Peace to you!"
"And to you,
Sheen."
And with that the man
went.
000
When Neil Ross reached
the byres of the farm in the wide hollow, he saw two figures standing as though
awaiting him, but separate, and unseen of the other. In front of the house was
a man he knew to be Andrew Blair; behind the milk-shed was a woman he guessed
to be Maisie Macdonald.
It was the woman he came
upon first.
"Are you the friend
of Sheen Macarthur?" she asked in a whisper, as she beckoned him to the
doorway.
"I am."
"I am knowing no
names or anything. And no one here will know you, I am thinking. So do the
thing and begone."
"There is no harm
to it?"
"None."
"It will be a thing
often done, is it not?"
"Ay, sure."
"And the evil does
not abide?"
"No. The ... the
... person ... the person takes them away, and...."
"Them?"
"For sure, man!
Them ... the sins of the corpse. He takes them away; and are you for thinking
God would let the innocent suffer for the guilty? No ... the person ... the
Sin-Eater, you know ... takes them away on himself, and one by one the air of
heaven washes them away till he, the Sin-Eater, is clean and whole as
before."
"But if it is a man
you hate ... if it is a corpse that is the corpse of one who has been a curse
and a foe ... if...."
"Sst! Be
still now with your foolishness. It is only an idle saying, I am thinking. Do
it, and take the money and go. It will be hell enough for Adam Blair, miser as
he was, if he is for knowing that five good shillings of his money are to go to
a passing tramp because of an old, ancient silly tale."
Neil Ross laughed low at
that. It was for pleasure to him.
"Hush wi' ye!
Andrew Blair is waiting round there. Say that I have sent you round, as I have
neither bite nor bit to give."
Turning on his heel,
Neil walked slowly round to the front of the house. A tall man was there, gaunt
and brown, with hairless face and lank brown hair, but with eyes cold and gray
as the sea.
"Good day to you,
an' good faring. Will you be passing this way to anywhere?"
"Health to you. I
am a stranger here. It is on my way to Iona I am. But I have the hunger upon
me. There is not a brown bit in my pocket. I asked at the door there, near the
byres. The woman told me she could give me nothing—not a penny even, worse
luck—nor, for that, a drink of warm milk. 'Tis a sore land this."
"You have the Gaelic
of the Isles. Is it from Iona you are?"
"It is from the
Isles of the West I come."
"From Tiree ...
from Coll?"
"No."
"From the Long
Island ... or from Uist ... or maybe from Benbecula?"
"No."
"Oh well, sure it
is no matter to me. But may I be asking your name?"
"Macallum."
"Do you know there
is a death here, Macallum?"
"If I didn't I
would know it now, because of what lies yonder."
Mechanically Andrew
Blair looked round. As he knew, a rough bier was there, that was made of a
dead-board laid upon three milking-stools. Beside it was a claar, a small tub
to hold potatoes. On the bier was a corpse, covered with a canvas sheeting that
looked like a sail.
"He was a worthy
man, my father," began the son of the dead man, slowly; "but he had
his faults, like all of us. I might even be saying that he had his sins, to the
Stones be it said. You will be knowing, Macallum, what is thought among the
folk ... that a stranger, passing by, may take away the sins of the dead, and
that, too, without any hurt whatever ... any hurt whatever."
"Ay, sure."
"And you will be
knowing what is done?"
"Ay."
"With the bread ...
and the water...?"
"Ay."
"It is a small
thing to do. It is a Christian thing. I would be doing it myself, and that
gladly, but the ... the ... passer-by who...."
"It is talking of
the Sin-Eater you are?"
"Yes, yes, for
sure. The Sin-Eater as he is called—and a good Christian act it is, for all
that the ministers and the priests make a frowning at it—the Sin-Eater must be
a stranger. He must be a stranger, and should know nothing of the dead
man—above all, bear him no grudge."
At that Neil Ross's eyes
lightened for a moment.
"And why
that?"
"Who knows? I have
heard this, and I have heard that. If the Sin-Eater was hating the dead man he
could take the sins and fling them into the sea, and they would be changed into
demons of the air that would harry the flying soul till Judgment-Day."
"And how would that
thing be done?"
The man spoke with
flashing eyes and parted lips, the breath coming swift. Andrew Blair looked at
him suspiciously; and hesitated, before, in a cold voice, he spoke again.
"That is all folly,
I am thinking, Macallum. Maybe it is all folly, the whole of it. But, see here,
I have no time to be talking with you. If you will take the bread and the water
you shall have a good meal if you want it, and ... and ... yes, look you, my
man, I will be giving you a shilling too, for luck."
"I will have no
meal in this house, Anndramhic-Adam; nor will I do this thing unless you will
be giving me two silver half-crowns. That is the sum I must have, or no
other."
"Two half-crowns!
Why, man, for one half-crown...."
"Then be eating the
sins o' your father yourself, Andrew Blair! It is going I am."
"Stop, man! Stop,
Macallum. See here—I will be giving you what you ask."
"So be it. Is
the.... Are you ready?"
"Ay, come this
way."
With that the two men
turned and moved slowly towards the bier.
In the doorway of the
house stood a man and two women; farther in, a woman; and at the window to the
left, the serving-wench, Jessie McFall, and two men of the farm. Of those in
the doorway, the man was Peter, the half-witted youngest brother of Andrew
Blair; the taller and older woman was Catreen, the widow of Adam, the second
brother; and the thin, slight woman, with staring eyes and drooping mouth, was
Muireall, the wife of Andrew. The old woman behind these was Maisie Macdonald.
Andrew Blair stooped and
took a saucer out of the claar. This he put upon the covered breast of the
corpse. He stooped again, and brought forth a thick square piece of new-made
bread. That also he placed upon the breast of the corpse. Then he stooped
again, and with that he emptied a spoonful of salt alongside the bread.
"I must see the
corpse," said Neil Ross simply.
"It is not needful,
Macallum."
"I must be seeing
the corpse, I tell you—and for that, too, the bread and the water should be on
the naked breast."
"No, no, man;
it...."
But here a voice, that
of Maisie the wise woman, came upon them, saying that the man was right, and
that the eating of the sins should be done in that way and no other.
With an ill grace the
son of the dead man drew back the sheeting. Beneath it, the corpse was in a
clean white shirt, a death-gown long ago prepared, that covered him from his
neck to his feet, and left only the dusky yellowish face exposed.
While Andrew Blair
unfastened the shirt and placed the saucer and the bread and the salt on the
breast, the man beside him stood staring fixedly on the frozen features of the
corpse. The new laird had to speak to him twice before he heard.
"I am ready. And
you, now? What is it you are muttering over against the lips of the dead?"
"It is giving him a
message I am. There is no harm in that, sure?"
"Keep to your own
folk, Macallum. You are from the West you say, and we are from the North. There
can be no messages between you and a Blair of Strathmore, no messages for you to
be giving."
"He that lies here
knows well the man to whom I am sending a message"—and at this response
Andrew Blair scowled darkly. He would fain have sent the man about his
business, but he feared he might get no other.
"It is thinking I
am that you are not a Macallum at all. I know all of that name in Mull, Iona,
Skye, and the near isles. What will the name of your naming be, and of your
father, and of his place?"
Whether he really wanted
an answer, or whether he sought only to divert the man from his
procrastination, his question had a satisfactory result.
"Well, now, it's
ready I am, Anndra-mhic-Adam."
With that, Andrew Blair
stooped once more and from the claar brought a small jug of water. From this he
filled the saucer.
"You know what to
say and what to do, Macallum."
There was not one there
who did not have a shortened breath because of the mystery that was now before
them, and the fearfulness of it. Neil Ross drew himself up, erect, stiff, with
white, drawn face. All who waited, save Andrew Blair, thought that the moving
of his lips was because of the prayer that was slipping upon them, like the
last lapsing of the ebb-tide. But Blair was watching him closely, and knew that
it was no prayer which stole out against the blank air that was around the
dead.
Slowly Neil Ross
extended his right arm. He took a pinch of the salt and put it in the saucer,
then took another pinch and sprinkled it upon the bread. His hand shook for a
moment as he touched the saucer. But there was no shaking as he raised it
towards his lips, or when he held it before him when he spoke.
"With this water
that has salt in it, and has lain on thy corpse, O Adam mhic Anndra mhic Adam
Mòr, I drink away all the evil that is upon thee...."
There was throbbing
silence while he paused.
"... And may it be
upon me and not upon thee, if with this water it cannot flow away."
Thereupon, he raised the
saucer and passed it thrice round the head of the corpse sunways; and, having
done this, lifted it to his lips and drank as much as his mouth would
hold. Thereafter he poured the remnant over his left hand, and let it trickle
to the ground. Then he took the piece of bread. Thrice, too, he passed it round
the head of the corpse sunways.
He turned and looked at
the man by his side, then at the others, who watched him with beating hearts.
With a loud clear voice
he took the sins.
"Thoir dhomh do
ciontachd, O Adam mhic Anndra mhic Adam Mòr! Give me thy sins to take
away from thee! Lo, now, as I stand here, I break this bread that has lain on
thee in corpse, and I am eating it, I am, and in that eating I take upon me the
sins of thee, O man that was alive and is now white with the stillness!"
Thereupon Neil Ross
broke the bread and ate of it, and took upon himself the sins of Adam Blair
that was dead. It was a bitter swallowing, that. The remainder of the bread he
crumbled in his hand, and threw it on the ground, and trod upon it. Andrew
Blair gave a sigh of relief. His cold eyes lightened with malice.
"Be off with you,
now, Macallum. We are wanting no tramps at the farm here, and perhaps you had
better not be trying to get work this side Iona; for it is known as the Sin-Eater
you will be, and that won't be for the helping, I am thinking! There—there are
the two half-crowns for you ... and may they bring you no harm, you that
are Scapegoat now!"
The Sin-Eater turned at
that, and stared like a hill-bull. Scapegoat! Ay, that's what
he was. Sin-Eater, Scapegoat! Was he not, too, another Judas, to have sold for
silver that which was not for the selling? No, no, for sure Maisie Macdonald
could tell him the rune that would serve for the easing of this burden. He
would soon be quit of it.
Slowly he took the
money, turned it over, and put it in his pocket.
"I am going, Andrew
Blair," he said quietly, "I am going now. I will not say to him that
is there in the silence, A chuid do Pharas da!—nor will I say to you, Gu'n
gleidheadh Dia thu,—nor will I say to this dwelling that is the home of thee
and thine, Gu'n beannaic-headh Dia an tigh!"[12]
Here there was a pause.
All listened. Andrew Blair shifted uneasily, the furtive eyes of him going this
way and that, like a ferret in the grass.
"But, Andrew Blair,
I will say this: when you fare abroad, Droch caoidh ort! and
when you go upon the water, Gaoth gun direadh ort! Ay, ay,
Anndra-mhic-Adam, Dia ad aghaidh 's ad aodann ... agus bas dunach ort!
Dhonas 's dholas ort, agus leat-sa!"[13]
The bitterness of these
words was like snow in June upon all there. They stood amazed. None spoke. No
one moved.
Neil Ross turned upon
his heel, and, with a bright light in his eyes, walked away from the dead and
the living. He went by the byres, whence he had come. Andrew Blair remained
where he was, now glooming at the corpse, now biting his nails and staring
at the damp sods at his feet.
When Neil reached the
end of the milk-shed he saw Maisie Macdonald there, waiting.
"These were ill
sayings of yours, Neil Ross," she said in a low voice, so that she might
not be overheard from the house.
"So, it is knowing
me you are."
"Sheen Macarthur
told me."
"I have good
cause."
"That is a true
word. I know it."
"Tell me this
thing. What is the rune that is said for the throwing into the sea of the sins
of the dead? See here, Maisie Macdonald. There is no money of that man that I
would carry a mile with me. Here it is. It is yours, if you will tell me that
rune."
Maisie took the money
hesitatingly. Then, stooping, she said slowly the few lines of the old, old
rune.
"Will you be
remembering that?"
"It is not
forgetting it I will be, Maisie."
"Wait a moment.
There is some warm milk here."
With that she went, and
then, from within, beckoned to him to enter.
"There is no one
here, Neil Ross. Drink the milk."
He drank; and while he
did so she drew a leather pouch from some hidden place in her dress.
"And now I have
this to give you."
She counted out ten
pennies and two farthings.
"It is all the
coppers I have. You are welcome to them. Take them, friend of my friend. They
will give you the food you need, and the ferry across the Sound."
"I will do that,
Maisie Macdonald, and thanks to you. It is not forgetting it I will be, nor
you, good woman. And now, tell me, is it safe that I am? He called me a
'scapegoat', he, Andrew Blair! Can evil touch me between this and the
sea?"
"You must go to the
place where the evil was done to you and yours—and that, I know, is on the west
side of Iona. Go, and God preserve you. But here, too, is a sian that will be
for the safety."
Thereupon, with swift
mutterings she said this charm: an old, familiar Sian against Sudden Harm:
"Sian a chuir Moire
air Mac ort,Sian ro' marbhadh, sian ro' lot ort,Sian eadar a' chlioch 's a'
ghlun,Sian nan Tri ann an aon ort,O mhullach do chinn gu bonn do chois ort:Sian
seachd eadar a h-aon ort,Sian seachd eadar a dha ort,Sian seachd eadar a tri
ort,Sian seachd eadar a ceithir ort,Sian seachd eadar a coig ort,Sian seachd
eadar a sia ort,Sian seachd paidir nan seach paidir dol deiseil ri diugh narach
ort,ga do ghleidheadh bho bheud 's bho mhi-thapadh!"
Scarcely had she
finished before she heard heavy steps approaching.
"Away with
you," she whispered, repeating in a loud, angry tone, "Away with
you! Seachad! Seachad!"
And with that Neil Ross
slipped from the milk-shed and crossed the yard, and was behind the byres
before Andrew Blair, with sullen mien and swift, wild eyes, strode from
the house.
It was with a grim smile
on his face that Neil tramped down the wet heather till he reached the high
road, and fared thence as through a marsh because of the rains there had been.
For the first mile he
thought of the angry mind of the dead man, bitter at paying of the silver. For
the second mile he thought of the evil that had been wrought for him and his.
For the third mile he pondered over all that he had heard and done and taken
upon him that day.
Then he sat down upon a
broken granite heap by the way, and brooded deep till one hour went, and then
another, and the third was upon him.
A man driving two calves
came towards him out of the west. He did not hear or see. The man stopped;
spoke again. Neil gave no answer. The drover shrugged his shoulders, hesitated,
and walked slowly on, often looking back.
An hour later a shepherd
came by the way he himself had tramped. He was a tall, gaunt man with a squint.
The small, pale-blue eyes glittered out of a mass of red hair that almost
covered his face. He stood still, opposite Neil, and leaned on his cromak.
"Latha math
leat," he said at last; "I wish you good day."
Neil glanced at him, but
did not speak.
"What is your name,
for I seem to know you?"
But Neil had already
forgotten him. The shepherd took out his snuff-mull, helped himself, and handed
the mull to the lonely wayfarer. Neil mechanically helped himself.
"Am bheil thu 'dol
do Fhionphort?" tried the shepherd again: "Are you going to
Fionnaphort?"
"Tha mise 'dol a
dh' I-challum-chille," Neil answered, in a low, weary voice, and as a man
adream: "I am on my way to Iona."
"I am thinking I
know now who you are. You are the man Macallum."
Neil looked, but did not
speak. His eyes dreamed against what the other could not see or know. The
shepherd called angrily to his dogs to keep the sheep from straying; then, with
a resentful air, turned to his victim.
"You are a silent
man for sure, you are. I'm hoping it is not the curse upon you already."
"What curse?"
"Ah, that has
brought the wind against the mist! I was thinking so!"
"What curse?"
"You are the man
that was the Sin-Eater over there?"
"Ay."
"The man
Macallum?"
"Ay."
"Strange it is, but
three days ago I saw you in Tobermory, and heard you give your name as Neil
Ross to an Iona man that was there."
"Well?"
"Oh, sure, it is
nothing to me. But they say the Sin-Eater should not be a man with a hidden
lump in his pack."[14]
"Why?"
"For the dead know,
and are content. There is no shaking off any sins, then—for that man."
"It is a lie."
"Maybe ay and maybe
no."
"Well, have you
more to be saying to me? I am obliged to you for your company, but it is not
needing it I am, though no offense."
"Och, man, there's
no offense between you and me. Sure, there's Iona in me, too; for the father of
my father married a woman that was the granddaughter of Tomais Macdonald, who
was a fisherman there. No, no; it is rather warning you I would be."
"And for
what?"
"Well, well, just
because of that laugh I heard about."
"What laugh?"
"The laugh of Adam
Blair that is dead."
Neil Ross stared, his
eyes large and wild. He leaned a little forward. No word came from him. The
look that was on his face was the question.
"Yes, it was this
way. Sure, the telling of it is just as I heard it. After you ate the sins of
Adam Blair, the people there brought out the coffin. When they were putting him
into it, he was as stiff as a sheep dead in the snow—and just like that, too,
with his eyes wide open. Well, someone saw you trampling the heather down the
slope that is in front of the house, and said, 'It is the Sin-Eater!' With
that, Andrew Blair sneered, and said—'Ay, 'tis the scapegoat he is!' Then,
after a while, he went on, 'The Sin-Eater they call him; ay, just so; and a
bitter good bargain it is, too, if all's true that's thought true!' And with
that he laughed, and then his wife that was behind him laughed, and
then...."
"Well, what
then?"
"Well, 'tis Himself
that hears and knows if it is true! But this is the thing I was told: After
that laughing there was a stillness and a dread. For all there saw that the
corpse had turned its head and was looking after you as you went down the
heather. Then, Neil Ross, if that be your true name, Adam Blair that was dead
put up his white face against the sky, and laughed."
At this, Ross sprang to
his feet with a gasping sob.
"It is a lie, that
thing!" he cried, shaking his fist at the shepherd. "It is a
lie."
"It is no lie. And
by the same token, Andrew Blair shrank back white and shaking, and his woman
had the swoon upon her, and who knows but the corpse might have come to life
again had it not been for Maisie Macdonald, the deid-watcher, who clapped a
handful of salt on his eyes, and tilted the coffin so that the bottom of it
slid forward, and so let the whole fall flat on the ground, with Adam Blair in
it sideways, and as likely as not cursing and groaning, as his wont was, for
the hurt both to his old bones and his old ancient dignity."
Ross glared at the man
as though the madness was upon him. Fear and horror and fierce rage swung him
now this way and now that.
"What will the name
of you be, shepherd?" he stuttered huskily.
"It is Eachainn
Gilleasbuig I am to ourselves; and the English of that for those who have no
Gaelic is Hector Gillespie; and I am Eachainn mac Ian mac Alasdair of
Strathsheean that is where Sutherland lies against Ross."
"Then take this
thing—and that is, the curse of the Sin-Eater! And a bitter bad thing may it be
upon you and yours."
And with that Neil the
Sin-Eater flung his hand up into the air, and then leaped past the shepherd,
and a minute later was running through the frightened sheep, with his head low,
and a white foam on his lips, and his eyes red with blood as a seal's that has
the death-wound on it.
000
On the third day of the
seventh month from that day, Aulay Macneill, coming into Balliemore of Iona
from the west side of the island, said to old Ronald MacCormick, that was the
father of his wife, that he had seen Neil Ross again, and that he was
"absent"—for though he had spoken to him, Neil would not answer, but
only gloomed at him from the wet weedy rock where he sat.
The going back of the
man had loosed every tongue that was in Iona. When, too, it was known that he
was wrought in some terrible way, if not actually mad, the islanders whispered
that it was because of the sins of Adam Blair. Seldom or never now did they
speak of him by his name, but simply as "The Sin-Eater." The thing
was not so rare as to cause this strangeness, nor did many (and perhaps none
did) think that the sins of the dead ever might or could abide with the living
who had merely done a good Christian charitable thing. But there was a reason.
Not long after Neil Ross
had come again to Iona, and had settled down in the ruined roofless house
on the croft of Ballyrona, just like a fox or a wild-cat, as the saying was, he
was given fishing-work to do by Aulay Macneill, who lived at Ard-an-teine, at
the rocky north end of the machar or plain that is on the west Atlantic coast
of the island.
One moonlit night,
either the seventh or the ninth after the earthing of Adam Blair at his own
place in the Ross, Aulay Macneill saw Neil Ross steal out of the shadow of
Ballyrona and make for the sea. Macneill was there by the rocks, mending a
lobster-creel. He had gone there because of the sadness. Well, when he saw the
Sin-Eater, he watched.
Neil crept from rock to
rock till he reached the last fang that churns the sea into yeast when the tide
sucks the land just opposite.
Then he called out
something that Aulay Macneill could not catch. With that he springs up, and
throws his arms above him.
"Then," says
Aulay when he tells the tale, "it was like a ghost he was. The moonshine
was on his face like the curl o' a wave. White! there is no whiteness like that
of the human face. It was whiter than the foam about the skerry it was; whiter
than the moon shining; whiter than ... well, as white as the painted letters on
the black boards of the fishing-cobles. There he stood, for all that the sea
was about him, the slip-slop waves leapin' wild, and the tide making, too, at
that. He was shaking like a sail two points off the wind. It was then that, all
of a sudden, he called in a womany, screamin' voice—
"'I am throwing the
sins of Adam Blair into the midst of ye, white dogs o' the sea! Drown
them, tear them, drag them away out into the black deeps! Ay, ay, ay, ye
dancin' wild waves, this is the third time I am doing it, and now there is none
left; no, not a sin, not a sin!
"'O-hi O-ri, dark
tide o' the sea,I am giving the sins of a dead man to thee!By the Stones, by
the Wind, by the Fire, by the Tree,From the dead man's sins set me free, set me
free!Adam mhic Anndra mhic Adam and me,Set us free! Set us free!'
"Ay, sure, the
Sin-Eater sang that over and over; and after the third singing he swung his
arms and screamed:
"'And listen to me,
black waters an' running tide,That rune is the good rune told me by Maisie the
wise,And I am Neil the son of Silis MacallumBy the black-hearted evil man
Murtagh Ross,That was the friend of Adam mac Anndra, God against him!'
"And with that he
scrambled and fell into the sea. But, as I am Aulay mac Luais and no other, he
was up in a moment, an' swimmin' like a seal, and then over the rocks again,
an' away back to that lonely roofless place once more, laughing wild at times,
an' muttering an' whispering."
It was this tale of
Aulay Macneill's that stood between Neil Ross and the isle-folk. There was
something behind all that, they whispered one to another.
So it was always the
Sin-Eater he was called at last. None sought him. The few children who came
upon him now and again fled at his approach, or at the very sight of him. Only
Aulay Macneill saw him at times, and had word of him.
After a month had gone
by, all knew that the Sin-Eater was wrought to madness because of this awful
thing: the burden of Adam Blair's sins would not go from him! Night and day he
could hear them laughing low, it was said.
But it was the quiet
madness. He went to and fro like a shadow in the grass, and almost as soundless
as that, and as voiceless. More and more the name of him grew as a terror.
There were few folk on that wild west coast of Iona, and these few avoided him
when the word ran that he had knowledge of strange things, and converse, too,
with the secrets of the sea.
One day Aulay Macneill,
in his boat, but dumb with amaze and terror for him, saw him at high tide
swimming on a long rolling wave right into the hollow of the Spouting Cave. In
the memory of man, no one had done this and escaped one of three things: a
snatching away into oblivion, a strangled death, or madness. The islanders know
that there swims into the cave, at full tide, a Mar-Tarbh, a dreadful creature
of the sea that some call a kelpie; only it is not a kelpie, which is like a
woman, but rather is a sea-bull, offspring of the cattle that are never seen.
Ill indeed for any sheep or goat, ay, or even dog or child, if any happens to
be leaning over the edge of the Spouting Cave when the Mar-tarv roars; for, of
a surety, it will fall in and straightway be devoured.
With awe and trembling
Aulay listened for the screaming of the doomed man. It was full tide, and the
sea-beast would be there.
The minutes passed, and
no sign. Only the hollow booming of the sea, as it moved like a baffled blind
giant round the cavern-bases; only the rush and spray of the water flung up the
narrow shaft high into the windy air above the cliff it penetrates.
At last he saw what
looked like a mass of seaweed swirled out on the surge. It was the Sin-Eater.
With a leap, Aulay was at his oars. The boat swung through the sea. Just before
Neil Ross was about to sink for the second time, he caught him and dragged him
into the boat.
But then, as ever after,
nothing was to be got out of the Sin-Eater save a single saying: Tha e lamhan
fuar! Tha e lamhan fuar!—"It has a cold, cold hand!"
The telling of this and
other tales left none free upon the island to look upon the
"scapegoat" save as one accursed.
It was in the third
month that a new phase of his madness came upon Neil Ross.
The horror of the sea
and the passion for the sea came over him at the same happening. Oftentimes he
would race along the shore, screaming wild names to it, now hot with hate and
loathing, now as the pleading of a man with the woman of his love. And strange
chants to it, too, were upon his lips. Old, old lines of forgotten runes were
overheard by Aulay Macneill, and not Aulay only; lines wherein the ancient
sea-name of the island, Ioua, that was given to it long before it
was called Iona, or any other of the nine names that are said to belong to
it, occurred again and again.
The flowing tide it was
that wrought him thus. At the ebb he would wander across the weedy slabs or
among the rocks, silent, and more like a lost duinshee than a man.
Then again after three
months a change in his madness came. None knew what it was, though Aulay said
that the man moaned and moaned because of the awful burden he bore. No drowning
seas for the sins that could not be washed away, no grave for the live sins
that would be quick till the day of the Judgment!
For weeks thereafter he
disappeared. As to where he was, it is not for the knowing.
Then at last came that
third day of the seventh month when, as I have said, Aulay Macneill told old
Ronald MacCormick that he had seen the Sin-Eater again.
It was only a half-truth
that he told, though. For, after he had seen Neil Ross upon the rock, he had
followed him when he rose, and wandered back to the roofless place which he
haunted now as of yore. Less wretched a shelter now it was, because of the
summer that was come, though a cold, wet summer at that.
"Is that you, Neil
Ross?" he had asked, as he peered into the shadows among the ruins of the
house.
"That's not my
name," said the Sin-Eater; and he seemed as strange then and there, as
though he were a castaway from a foreign ship.
"And what will it
be, then, you that are my friend, and sure knowing me as Aulay mac Luais—Aulay
Macneill that never grudges you bit or sup?"
"I am Judas."
000
"And at that
word," says Aulay Macneill, when he tells the tale, "at that word the
pulse in my heart was like a bat in a shut room. But after a bit I took up the
talk.
"'Indeed,' I said;
'and I was not for knowing that. May I be so bold as to ask whose son, and of
what place?'
"But all he said to
me was, 'I am Judas.'
"Well, I said, to comfort
him, 'Sure, it's not such a bad name in itself, though I am knowing some which
have a more home-like sound.' But no, it was no good.
"'I am Judas. And
because I sold the Son of God for five pieces of silver....'
"But here I
interrupted him and said, 'Sure, now, Neil—I mean, Judas—it was eight times
five.' Yet the simpleness of his sorrow prevailed, and I listened with the wet
in my eyes.
"'I am Judas. And
because I sold the Son of God for five silver shillings, He laid upon me all
the nameless black sins of the world. And that is why I am bearing them till
the Day of Days.'"
And this was the end of
the Sin-Eater; for I will not tell the long story of Aulay Macneill, that gets
longer and longer every winter; but only the unchanging close of it.
I will tell it in the
words of Aulay.
"A bitter, wild day
it was, that day I saw him to see him no more. It was late. The sea was red
with the flamin' light that burned up the air betwixt Iona and all that is
west of West. I was on the shore, looking at the sea. The big green waves came
in like the chariots in the Holy Book. Well, it was on the black shoulder of
one of them, just short of the ton o' foam that swept above it, that I saw a
spar surgin' by.
"'What is that?' I
said to myself. And the reason of my wondering was this: I saw that a smaller
spar was swung across it. And while I was watching that thing another great
billow came in with a roar, and hurled the double spar back, and not so far
from me but I might have gripped it. But who would have gripped that thing if
he were for seeing what I saw?
"It is Himself
knows that what I say is a true thing.
"On that spar was
Neil Ross, the Sin-Eater. Naked he was as the day he was born. And he was
lashed, too—ay, sure, he was lashed to it by ropes round and round his legs and
his waist and his left arm. It was the Cross he was on. I saw that thing with
the fear upon me. Ah, poor drifting wreck that he was! Judas on the
Cross! It was his eric!
"But even as I
watched, shaking in my limbs, I saw that there was life in him still. The lips
were moving, and his right arm was ever for swinging this way and that. 'Twas
like an oar, working him off a lee shore; ay, that was what I thought.
"Then, all at once,
he caught sight of me. Well he knew me, poor man, that has his share of heaven
now, I am thinking!
"He waved, and
called, but the hearing could not be, because of a big surge o' water that came
tumbling down upon him. In the stroke of an oar he was swept close by the rocks
where I was standing. In that flounderin', seethin' whirlpool I saw the
white face of him for a moment, an' as he went out on the re-surge like a
hauled net, I heard these words fallin' against my ears:
"'An eirig
m'anama.... In ransom for my soul!'
"And with that I
saw the double-spar turn over and slide down the back-sweep of a drowning big
wave. Ay, sure, it went out to the deep sea swift enough then. It was in the
big eddy that rushes between Skerry-Mòr and Skerry-Beag. I did not see it
again—no, not for the quarter of an hour, I am thinking. Then I saw just the
whirling top of it rising out of the flying yeast of a great, black-blustering
wave, that was rushing northward before the current that is called the
Black-Eddy.
"With that you have
the end of Neil Ross; ay, sure, him that was called the Sin-Eater. And that is
a true thing; and may God save us the sorrow of sorrows.
"And that is
all."
By
Gambier Bolton
Ex-Pres. The Psychological Society, London,
F.R.G.S., F.Z.S., etc.
CHAPTER I
"A single grain
of solid fact is worth ten tons of theory."
"The more I
think of it, the more I find this conclusion impressed upon me, that the
greatest thing a human soul ever does in this world is to SEE something and
tell what it saw in a plain way. Hundreds of people can talk for one who can
think, but thousands can think for one who can see. To SEE clearly is poetry,
prophecy, and religion all in one."—John
Ruskin.
Working Hypothesis
That under certain known
and reasonable conditions of temperature, light, etc., entities, existing in a
sphere outside our own, have been demonstrated again and again to manifest
themselves on earth in temporary bodies materialized from an, at present,
undiscovered source, through the agency of certain persons of both sexes,
termed "sensitives," and can be so demonstrated to any person who
will provide the conditions proved to be necessary for such a demonstration.
Conditions
Looking back to the
seven years of my life which I devoted to a careful and critical investigation
of the claim made, not only by both Occidental and Oriental mystics but by
well-known men of science like Sir William Crookes, Professor Alfred Russel
Wallace, and others—that it was possible under certain clearly defined
conditions to produce, apparently out of nothing, fully formed bodies,
inhabited by (presumably) human entities from another sphere—the wonder of it
still enthralls me; the apparent impossibility of so great an upheaval of such
laws of Nature as we are at present acquainted with being proved clearly to be
possible, will remain to the end as "the wonder of wonders" in a by
no means uneventful life.
For, as compared with
this, that greatest of Nature's mysteries—the procreation of a human infant by
either the normal or mechanical impregnation of an ovum, its months of foetal
growth and development in the uterus, and its birth into the world in a
helpless and enfeebled condition, amazing as they are to all physiological
students—sinks into comparative insignificance when compared with the nearly instantaneous
production of a fully developed human body, with all its organs functioning
properly; a body inhabited temporarily by a thinking, reasoning entity, who can
see, hear, taste, smell and touch: a body which can be handled, weighed,
measured, and photographed.
When these claims were
first brought to my notice I realized at once that I was face to face with a
problem which would require the very closest investigation; and I then and
there decided to give up work of all kinds and to devote years, if necessary,
to a critical examination of these claims, to investigate the matter calmly and
dispassionately, and, in Sir John Herschel's memorable words, "to
stand or fall by the result of a direct appeal to facts in the first
instance, and of strict logical deduction from them afterwards."
And, as I have said, the
result has been that the apparently impossible has been proved to be possible—the
facts have beaten me, and I accept them whole-heartedly, admitting that our
working hypothesis has been proved beyond any possibility of doubt, and that
these materialized entities can manifest themselves to-day to any person who
will provide the conditions necessary for such a demonstration.
Who they are, what they
are, whence they come, and whither they go, each investigator must determine
for himself, but of their actual existence in a sphere just outside our own
there can no longer be any room for doubt. As a busy man, theories have little
or no attraction for me. What I demand, and what other busy men and women
demand in an investigation of this kind is that there should be a reasonable
possibility of getting hold of facts, good solid facts which can be
demonstrated as such to any open-minded inquirer, otherwise it would be useless
to commence such an investigation. And we have now got these facts, and can
prove them on purely scientific lines.
The meaning of the word
materialization, so far at least as it concerns our investigation, I understand
to be this: the taking on by an entity from a sphere outside our own, an entity
representing a man, woman, or child (or even a beast or bird), of a temporary
body built up from material drawn partially from the inhabitants of earth,
consolidated through the agency of certain persons of both sexes, termed
sensitives, and moulded by the entity into a semblance of the body which
(it alleges) it inhabited during its existence on earth. In other words, a
materialization is the appearance of an entity in bodily, tangible form, i.e.,
one which we can touch, thus differing from an astralization, etherealization,
or apparition, which is, of course, one which cannot be touched, although it
may be clearly visible to any one possessing only normal sight.
Let me, then, endeavor
to describe to the best of my ability, and in very simple language, how I
believe these materializations to be produced, and the conditions which I have
proved to be necessary in order that the finest results may be obtained.
I will deal first with
the question of the conditions, as without conditions of some kind
no materialization can be produced, any more than a scientific experiment—such
as mixing various chemicals together, in order to produce a certain result—can
be carried out successfully without proper conditions being provided by the
experimenter. What, then, do we mean by this word "conditions"?
Take a homely example.
The baker mixes exactly the right quantities of flour, salt, and yeast with
water, and then places the dough which he has made in an oven heated to just
the right temperature, and produces a loaf of bread. Why? Because the
conditions were good ones. Had he omitted the flour, the yeast, or the water,
or had he used an oven over or under-heated, he could not have produced an
eatable loaf of bread, because the conditions made it impossible.
This is what is meant by
the terms "good conditions," "bad conditions,"
"breaking conditions."
The conditions, then,
under which I have been able to prove to many hundreds of inquirers that it is
possible for materialized entities to appear on earth, in solid tangible form,
are these:
First, light, of
suitable wave-length, i.e. suitable color, and let me say here, once and for
all, that I have proved conclusively for myself that darkness is not
necessary, provided that one is experimenting with a sensitive who has been
trained to sit always in the light.
On two occasions I have
witnessed materializations in daylight; and neither of Sir William Crookes's
sensitives—D. D. Home or Florrie Cook (Mrs. Corner)—would ever sit in darkness,
the latter—with whom I carried out a long series of experiments—invariably
stipulating that a good light should be used during the whole time that the
experiment lasted, as she was terrified at the mere thought of darkness.
I find that sunlight,
electric light, gas, colza oil, and paraffine are all apt to check the
production of the phenomena unless filtered through canary-yellow, orange, red
linen or paper—just as they are filtered for photographic purposes—owing to the
violent action of the actinic (blue) rays which they contain (the rays from the
violet end of the spectrum), which are said to work at about six hundred
billions of vibrations per second. But if the light is filtered in the way that
I have described, the production of the phenomena will commence at once, the
vibrations of the interfering rays being reduced, it is said, to about four
hundred billions per second or less.
In dealing with
materializations we are apt to overlook the fact that we are investigating
forces or modes of energy far more delicate than electricity, for
instance. Heat, electricity, and light, as Sir William Crookes tells us, are
all closely related; we know the awful power of heat and electricity, but are
only too apt to forget—especially if it suits our purpose to do so—that light
too has enormous dynamic potency; its vibrations being said to travel in space
at the incredible speed of twelve million miles a minute;[15] and
it is therefore only reasonable to assume that the power of these vibrations
may be sufficient to interfere seriously with the more subtle forces, such as
those which we are now investigating.
Secondly, we require
suitable heat vibrations, and I find that those given off in a room either
warmed or chilled to sixty-three degrees are the very best possible; anything
either much above this, or more especially, much below this, tending to weaken
the results and to cheek the phenomena.
Thirdly, we require
suitable musical vibrations, and, after carrying out a long
series of experiments with musical instruments of all kinds, I find that the
vibrations given off by the reed organ—termed "harmonium" or
"American organ"—or by the concertina, are the most suitable, the
peculiar quality of the vibrations given off by the reeds in these instruments
proving to be the most suitable ones for use during the production of the
phenomena; although on one or two occasions I have obtained good results
without musical vibrations of any kind, but this is rare.
Fourthly, we require the
presence of a specially organized man or woman, termed the sensitive,
one from whom it is alleged a portion of the matter used by the entity in
the building up of its temporary body can be drawn, with but little chance of
injury to their health. This point is one of vital importance, we are told, for
it has been proved by means of a self-registering weighing-machine on which he
was seated, and to which he was securely fastened with an electrical apparatus
secretly hidden beneath the seat, which would at once ring a bell in an
anteroom if he endeavored to rise from his seat during the experiment, that the
actual loss in weight to the sensitive, when a fully materialized entity was
standing in our midst, was no less than sixty-five pounds!
Before employing any
person, then, as a sensitive for these delicate, not to say dangerous,
experiments, he or she should be medically examined, in the interests of both
the investigator and the sensitive, and should their health prove to be in any
way below par, they should not be permitted to take part in the experiment
until their health is fully restored.
I have been permitted to
examine the sensitive at the moment when an entity, clad in a fully-formed
temporary body, was walking amongst the experimenters; and the distorted
features, the shrivelled-up limbs and contorted trunk of the sensitive at that
moment proclaimed the danger connected with the production of this special form
of phenomena far louder than any words of mine could do.
Needless to say,
sensitives for materializations are extremely rare, not more than two or three
being found to-day amidst the teeming millions who inhabit the British Islands;
although a few are to be found on the European continent, and several in
North America, where the climatic conditions are said to be more favorable for
the development of such persons.
Now, what constitutes a
sensitive, and why are they necessary?
Sensitives through whom
physical phenomena (including materializations) can be produced have been
described, firstly, as persons in whom certain forces are stored up, either far
in excess of the amount possessed by the normal man or woman, or else differing
in quality from the forces stored up by the normal man or woman; and secondly,
as persons who are able to attract from those in close proximity to
them—provided that the conditions are favorable—still more of the force, which
thus becomes centered in them for the time being. In other words, a sensitive
for physical phenomena is said to be a storage battery for the force which is
used in the production of physical phenomena—including
materializations—although it is by no means improbable that such highly
developed sensitives as those required for this special purpose may be found to
possess extra nerve-centers as compared with those possessed by normal human
beings. But whether this hypothesis be eventually proved or not, there seems to
be but very little doubt that "whatever the force may be which constitutes
the difference between a sensitive and a non-sensitive, it is certainly of a
mental or magnetic character, i.e., a combination of the subtle elements of
mind and magnetism, and therefore of a psychological, and not of a
purely physical character."
But why is a sensitive
necessary? you ask. Think of a telephone for a moment. You wish to communicate with
a person who is holding only the end of the wire in his hand, the result being
that he cannot hear a single word. Why is this? Because he has forgotten to fit
a receiver at his end of the wire, a receiver in which the vibrations set up by
your voice may be centralized, focussed, a receiver which he can place to his
ear, and in doing so will at once hear your voice distinctly—but without this
your message to him is lost.
And it is said that this
is exactly the use of the sensitives during our experiments, for they act as
"receivers" in which the forces employed in the production of the
phenomena may be centralized, focussed, their varying degrees of sensitiveness
enabling them to be used by the entities in other spheres for the successful
production of such phenomena, we are told.
And lastly, we require
about twelve to sixteen earnest and really sympathetic men and women—persons
trained on scientific lines for choice—all in the best of health; men and women
who, whilst strictly on their guard against anything in the shape of fraud, are
still so much in sympathy with the person who is acting as the sensitive that
they are all the time sending out kindly thoughts towards him; for if, as has
been said, "thoughts are things," it is possible that hostile
thoughts would be sufficient not only to enfeeble, but actually to check
demonstrations of physical phenomena of all kinds in the presence of such
specially organized, highly developed individuals as the sensitives through
whom materializations can be produced.
I shall refer to these
men and women as the sitters. We generally select an equal number so far as sex
is concerned; and, in addition, we endeavor to obtain an equal number of
persons possessing either positive or negative temperaments. In this way we
form the sitters into a powerful human battery, the combined force given off by
them (if the battery is properly arranged, and the individual members of that battery
are in good health) proving of enormous assistance during our experiments. If
in ill-health, we find that a man or woman is useless to us, for we can no more
expect to obtain the necessary power from such an individual than we can expect
to produce an electric spark from a discharged accumulator, or pick up needles
with a demagnetized piece of steel.
We are told to remember
always that "all manifestations of natural laws are the results of natural
conditions."
000
Minor details too, we
find, must be thought out most carefully if we are to provide what we may term
ideal conditions.
The chairs should be
made of wood throughout, those known as Austrian bentwood chairs, having
perforated seats, being proved to be the best for the purpose.
The sitters should bathe
and then change their clothing—the ladies into white dresses, and the men into
dark suits—two hours before the time fixed for the experiment, and should then
at once partake of a light meal—meat and alcohol being strictly forbidden—so
that the strain upon their constitutions during the experiment may not
interfere with their health.
Trivial as such matters
must appear to the man in the street, we are told they must all be carried out
most carefully, in order that the finest conditions possible may be
obtained, the one great object of the sitters being to give off all the
power—and the best kind of power—that they are capable of producing, in order
that sufficient suitable material may be gathered together from the sensitive
and themselves, with which a temporary body may be formed for the use of any
entity wishing to materialize in their presence.
Precautions Against
Fraud
We are now ready to see
what happens at a typical experimental meeting for these materializations, at
hundreds of which I have assisted, having the services of no less than six
sensitives placed at my disposal for this purpose. I will endeavor to describe
what I should consider to be an ideal one, held under ideal (test) conditions.
Our imaginary test
meeting is to be carried out—as it was on one occasion in London—in an entirely
empty house, which none of us has ever entered before, a house which we will
hire for this special event. By doing this we may feel sure that all
possibility of fraud, so far as the use of secret trap-doors, large mirrors,
and other undesirable things of that description are concerned, can be
successfully thwarted.
We are now ready to
start our experiment; the general feeling of all those in the room being that
every possible precaution against trickery has been taken, and that if any
results of any kind whatever should follow they will undoubtedly be genuine.
The sitters having been
allotted their seats, so that a person of a positive and a person of a negative
temperament are seated together, we now join hands, and form ourselves into
what we are told is a powerful human battery; the two persons sitting at the
two ends of the half-circle having of course each one hand free, and from the
free hands of these two persons, it is said, the power developed and given off
by this human battery passes into the sensitive at each of his sides.
Sitting quietly in our
chairs and talking gently amongst ourselves, we soon feel a cool breeze blowing
across our hands. In another two minutes this will have so increased in volume
that it may with truth be described as a strong wind.
On looking at the
sensitive now, we see that he is rapidly passing into a state of trance—his
head is drooping on one side, his arms and hands hang downwards loosely, his
body being in a limp real trance condition, and just in the
right state for use by any entity desiring to work through him, we are told.
I have only experimented
with one sensitive who did not pass into trance, who, seated amongst the
sitters, remained in a perfectly normal condition during the whole of the
experiment; watching the materialized forms building up beside him, and talking
to and with them during the process. I shall refer to him shortly.
000
We now set our
clairvoyants to work, and the statements made by one must be confirmed in every
detail by the statements of the other as to what is occurring at the moment, or
no notice is taken of their remarks.
Both now report that
they see a thin white mist or vapor[16] coming
from the left side of the sensitive, if a man (or from the pelvis, if a woman),
which passes into the sitter at the end of the half-circle nearest to the
sensitive's left side. It then passes, they state, from Sitter No. 1 to Sitter
No. 2, and so on, until it has gone through the whole of the sixteen sitters,
passing finally from the last one—No. 16—at the end of the half-circle nearest
to the sensitive's right side, and disappears into his right side.
We assume from this that
the nerve force, magnetic power—call it what you will—necessary for the
formation of one of these temporary bodies starts from the sensitive, passes
through each sitter, drawing from each as much more force or power as he or she
is capable of giving off at the moment, returning to the sensitive greatly
increased in its amount and ready for use in the next process. This, then, we
will term the first of the three stages in the evolution of an entity clad in a
temporary body.
The Vapor Stage
In a few moments our
clairvoyants both report that the force or power is issuing from the side of
the sensitive, if a man (or from the pelvis, if a woman), in the form of a
white, soft, dough-like substance, which on one occasion I was permitted to
touch. I could perceive no smell given off by it; it felt cold and clammy, and
appeared to have the consistency of heavy dough at the moment that I touched
it.
This mass of dough-like
substance is said to be the material used by the entities—one by one as a
rule—who wish to build up a temporary body. It seems to rest on the floor,
somewhere near the right side of the sensitive, until required for use: its
bulk depending apparently upon the amount of power given off by the sitters
from time to time during the experiment.
This we will term the
second of the three stages of the evolution of an entity clad in a temporary
body.
The Solid, but Shapeless
Stage
We are told that the
entity wishing to show himself to us passes into this shapeless mass of dough-like
substance, which at once increases in bulk, and commences to pulsate and move
up and down, swaying from side to side as it grows in height, the motive power
being evidently underneath.
The entity then quickly
sets to work to mould the mass into something resembling a human body,
commencing with the head. The rest of the upper portion of the body soon
follows, and the heart and pulse can now be felt to be beating quite regularly
and normally, differing in this respect from those of the sensitive, who, if
tested at this time, will be found with both heart and pulse-beats considerably
above the normal. The legs and feet come last, and then the entity is able to
leave the near neighborhood of the sensitive and to walk amongst the sitters,
the third and last stage of its evolution being now complete.
Although occasionally
the entity will appear clad in an exact copy of the clothing which he states
that he wore when on earth—especially if it should happen to be something a
little out of the common, such as a military or naval uniform—they are
draped as a rule in flowing white garments of a wonderfully soft texture, and
this, too, I have been permitted to handle.
Our clairvoyants both
affirm that at all times during the materialization a thin band of, presumably,
the dough-like substance can be plainly seen issuing from the side of the
sensitive, if a man, (or from the pelvis, if a woman), and joined onto the
center of the body inhabited by the entity—just like the umbilical cord
attached to a human infant at birth—and we are instructed that this band cannot
be stretched beyond a certain radius, say ten to fifteen feet, without doing
harm to the sensitive and to the entity; although cases are on record where
materializations have been seen at a distance of nearly sixty feet from the
sensitive, on occasions when the conditions were unusually favorable.
On handling different
portions of the materialized body now, the flesh is found to be both warm and
firm. The bodies are well proportioned, those of the females—for they take on
sex conditions during the process—having beautiful figures; the hands, arms,
legs, and feet are quite perfect in their modelling, but in my opinion the
body, head, and limbs of every materialization of either sex or any age which I
have scrutinized at close quarters carefully, or have been permitted to handle,
have appeared to be at least one-third smaller in size (except as regards
actual height) than those possessed by beings on earth of the same sex and age.
Not only have we witnessed
materializations of aged entities of both sexes, showing all the
characteristics of old age—for the purpose of identification by the sitters, as
they tell us—but we have seen materialized infants also; and on one
occasion two still-born children appeared in our midst simultaneously, one of
them showing distinct traces on its little face of a hideous deformity which it
possessed at the time of its premature birth—a deformity known only to the
mother, who happened to be present that evening as one of the sitters.
We are told that, for
the purpose of identification, the entity will return to earth in an exact
counterpart of the body which he alleges that he occupied at the time of his
death, in order that he may be recognized by his relatives and friends who
happen to be present. Thus, the one who left the earth as an infant will appear
in his materialized body as an infant, although he may have been dead for
twenty or thirty years. The aged man or woman will appear with bent body,
wrinkled face, and snow-white hair, walking amongst us with difficulty, and
just as they allege they did before their death, although that may have
occurred twenty years before. The one who had lost a limb during his earth-life
will return minus that limb; the one who was disfigured by accident or disease
will return bearing distinct traces of that disfigurement, for the purpose of
identification only.
But as soon as the
identification has been established successfully, all this changes instantly;
the disfigurement disappears; the four limbs will be seen, and both the infant
and the aged will from henceforth show themselves to us in the very prime of
life—the young growing upwards and the aged downwards, as we say, and, as they
one and all state emphatically, just as they really look and feel in the sphere
in which they now exist.
While inhabiting these
temporary bodies, they state that they take on, not only sex conditions, but
earth conditions temporarily too; for they appear to feel pain if their bodies
are injured in any way; complain of the cold if the temperature of the room is
allowed to fall much below sixty degrees, or of the heat if the temperature is
allowed to rise above seventy degrees; seem to be depressed during a
thunderstorm, when our atmosphere is overcharged with electricity; and appear
bright and happy in a warm room when the world outside is in the grip of a hard
frost, and also on bright, starry nights.
And not only this, but
they take on strongly marked characteristics of the numerous races on earth
temporarily too; the materialized entities of the white races differing quite
as markedly from those of the yellow or brown races, as do these from the black
races; and in speaking to us each one will communicate in the particular
language only which is characteristic of his race on earth.
Five, six and even seven totally
different languages have been employed during a single experimental meeting
through a sensitive who had never in his life been out of England, and who was
proved conclusively to know no other language than English; the latter number,
we were told, being in honor of a ship's doctor who was present on one
occasion, and who—although the fact was quite unknown to any of us at the
time—proved to be an expert linguist, for he conversed that evening with
different entities in English, French, German, Russian, Chinese, Japanese, and
in the language of one of the hill-tribes of India.
On another occasion,
when I was the only European present at an afternoon experimental meeting held
in London by eight Parsees of both sexes from Bombay, during the whole of the
time which the meeting lasted—two and a quarter hours—the entities and the
Parsee sitters carried on their conversation in Hindustani; two entities and
one of the Parsee men simultaneously engaging in a heated controversy, which
lasted for nearly three minutes, over the disposal of the bodies of their dead,
the entities insisting on cremation only, as opposed to allowing the bodies to
be eaten by vultures—the noise which they made during this discussion being
almost deafening. The sensitive, it was proved conclusively, knew no other
language than English, and had only once been out of the British Islands, when
he paid a short visit to France.
CHAPTER II
"Sit down before
a fact as a little child: be prepared to give up every preconceived notion:
follow humbly wherever and to whatever abysses Nature leads, or you shall learn
nothing."—Thomas Huxley.
Tests
The tests given to me
and to my fellow-investigators through the six sensitives who so ably assisted
us during our seven years of experimental work in this little-known field of
research—the tests have been so numerous, and were of such a varied character,
that I find it somewhat difficult to know which to select out of the hundreds
which were recorded in our books officially and elsewhere, the ones which will
prove of the greatest interest to inquirers; but I have made extracts from ten
of these records, and these, with a few taken from Sir William Crookes's
reports on the experiments conducted in his presence, will, in my opinion, be
sufficient to prove that we who have witnessed these marvels are neither
hallucinated, insane, nor liars when we solemnly affirm that we have both seen
and handled the materialized bodies built up for temporary use by entities from
another sphere; all the statements made here being true in every detail, to the
best of my knowledge and belief.
Experiment No. 1
Place—Lyndhurst, New
Forest, Hampshire. Sensitive A, male, aged about 46.
As an example of a simple
but exceedingly severe test, I would first record one given to me and a
fellow-investigator on the outskirts of the New Forest, one for which no
special preparation of any kind whatever had been made.
The sensitive, a nearly
blind man, was taken by us on a dark night to a spot totally unknown to him, as
he had only just arrived from London by train, and was led into a large
travelling caravan, one which he had never been near before, as it had only
recently left the builder's hands.
During the day I had
made a critical examination of the interior of the caravan, and had satisfied
myself that no one was or could possibly be concealed in it. I then locked
the door, and kept the key in my pocket until the moment when, on the arrival
of the sensitive, I unlocked the door and we all passed into the caravan
together. I then locked and bolted the door behind us.
As I have already said,
no preparation of any kind had been made for the experiment. It was merely the
result of a desire to see if anything could be produced through this sensitive,
under extremely difficult conditions—conditions which we considered as so
utterly bad as to make failure a certainty.
We did not even possess
a chair of any kind for the sensitive or ourselves to sit upon, so we placed
for his use a board on top of the iron cooking-range which was fixed in the
kitchen-portion of the caravan, whilst we sat upon the two couches which were
used as beds in the living-portion of the caravan. There was no music, no
powerful "human battery" in the shape of a number of picked sitters;
in fact, the conditions were just about as bad as they could possibly be, and
yet, within ten minutes of my locking the door behind us, the figure of a tall
man stood before us, a man so tall that he was compelled to bow his head as he
passed under the six-foot high partition which separated the two sections of
the caravan.
He said, "I am
Colonel — who was 'killed,' as you say, at the battle of — in Egypt. For many
years during my earth-life I was deeply interested in materializations, and
spent the last night of my life in England experimenting with this very
sensitive; and it is a great pleasure to me to be able to return to
you—strangers though you both are to me—through him. To prove to you that I am
not the sensitive masquerading before you, will you please come here and
stand close to me, and so settle the matter for yourself?"
I at once rose and stood
beside him, almost touching him. I then discovered that not only were his
features and his coloring totally different from those of the sensitive, but
that he towered above me, standing, as nearly as I could judge, six foot two or
three inches, and was certainly four inches taller than either the sensitive or
myself.
Whilst thus standing
beside him, and at a distance of about eight feet from the sensitive, we could
both hear the unfortunate man moving uneasily on his hard seat on the
kitchen-range, sighing and moaning as if in pain.
The entity remained with
us for about three minutes, and his place was then taken by a slightly built
young man, standing about five feet nine inches, one claiming to be a recently
deceased member of the royal family. He talked with us in a soft and pleasing
voice, finally whispering a private message to my companion, asking him to
deliver it to his mother, Queen —.
Experiment No. 2
Place—Peckham Rye,
London, S. E. Sensitive A, male, aged about 46.
An almost equally
hopeless task was set this sensitive by the owner of the caravan and myself
when we experimented with him at midday on a brilliant morning in July, with
sunlight streaming into the room round the edges of the drawn down
window-blinds, and round the top, sides, and bottom of the heavy
window-curtains, which we had pinned together in a vain attempt to keep
out the sunlight during the experiment.
And yet once again, and
in spite of the conditions which we regarded as utterly hopeless, the figure of
a man appeared in less than ten minutes, materialized from head to foot, as he
proved to us by showing us his lower limbs. He left the side of the sensitive,
walked out into the room and stood between us, talking to us in a deep rich
voice for nearly three minutes. As he stood beside us we could hear the
sensitive, twelve feet away, moving uneasily on his chair and groaning
slightly.
Five minutes after he
disappeared the same (alleged) recently deceased member of the royal family
walked out to us and held a short private conversation with my companion, and
sent another message to his mother, Queen —.
Experiment No. 3
Place—West Hampstead,
London, N. W. Sensitive B, female, aged about 49.
Persons of middle age or
older who happened to be in England a few years ago at the time that two
lawsuits were brought against a celebrated conjurer by the clever young man who
had succeeded in exposing one of his most mystifying tricks, will well remember
the sensation caused by the giving of both verdicts against the conjurer; and
the young man—to whom I shall refer as Mr. X—at once became famous as the man
who had beaten one of the cleverest conjurers of the day.
A friend of mine, who
had been present on several occasions when Sir William Crookes's
sensitive—Florrie Cook (Mrs. Corner), referred to above as Sensitive B—had
produced materializations in gaslight at my house in London, asked her to visit
his house at West Hampstead one evening to meet several friends of his, and to
see if it were possible for any entity to materialize in my friend's own
drawing-room.
She at once accepted his
invitation to sit there under strict test conditions; and, talking the matter
over with some of his friends a day or two before the one chosen for the
experiment, he told me that they had arranged to have the sensitive securely
tied to her chair, to have strong iron rings fastened to the floor-boards,
through which ropes would be passed, these ropes to be securely fastened to the
sensitive's legs; all knots of every size and kind to be sealed, so as to
prevent any attempt on her part to leave her chair and to masquerade as a
materialized entity.
One of his friends
happened to know the celebrated Mr. X—, and, as he had so recently succeeded in
beating so notable a conjurer, he was invited to be present and to take entire
charge of the tying up, the binding and sealing arrangements, in order to
render the escape of the sensitive from her chair an impossibility.
When I joined the party
in the drawing-room, Mr. X—, to whom I was introduced, was busily engaged in
tying the sensitive up with his own ropes and tapes, sealing every knot with
special sealing-wax and with a seal provided by our host. The room was a large
one, and a portion at one end had been cleared of all furniture, and in the
center of this space only the sensitive seated upon her chair, and Mr. X—
busily at work, were to be seen; and the latter, after another fifteen minutes
of real hard labor, was asked by our host if he was thoroughly satisfied that
the sensitive was fastened to her chair securely. He replied that so securely
was she fastened, that if she could produce phenomena of any kind whatever
under such conditions, he would at once admit their genuineness.
The sensitive was all
this time in a perfectly normal state, and not flurried in any way, her one
anxiety being lest we should lower the lights, as she was so terrified at the
thought of darkness.
Mr. X—, after stepping
backwards to have a final look at the result of his labors, then walked close
to the spot where the sensitive was sitting in gaslight, and put one hand up
towards the top of the curtain, and was in the act of drawing this round her to
keep the direct rays of the gaslight from falling upon her, when a large brown
arm and hand suddenly appeared, the hand being clapped heavily upon Mr. X—'s
shoulder, whilst a gruff masculine voice asked him in loud tones, "Are you
really satisfied?"
I have witnessed some
strange happenings in connection with my investigation of occult matters, but
to my dying day I shall never forget the look of blank astonishment on Mr. X—'s
face at that moment.
Quickly recovering
himself, however, he at once examined the sensitive—a little woman, far below
the average height, having small hands and feet, as we could all see quite
clearly—and declared that every seal and every knot was unbroken, and just as
he had left them not sixty seconds before.
Amongst other entities
who materialized that evening was a young girl of about eighteen years of age
who stated that when she left her earth-body she had been a dancer at a
café in Algiers.
She came from the spot
where the sensitive was seated, laughing heartily, stating that the hand and
arm belonged to an old English sailor, whom she spoke of as "the
Captain." She said, further, that he had been standing with her watching
the tying-up process from their sphere, and laughing at Mr. X—'s vain attempt
to prevent the production of the phenomena. The Captain had very much wished to
materialize fully, so as to surprise Mr. X— as he stepped back from the
sensitive; but, finding that he could only get sufficient "power" to
produce a hand and arm, he was in a bad temper. And this was evidently the
case, for during the ten minutes that the girl remained talking to us we could
now and then hear the gruff voice of the Captain rolling out language which can
only be described as "forcible and free."
The experiment lasted
for nearly an hour, and at its conclusion Mr. X— examined the sensitive, and
once again reported that every seal and knot were just as he had left them at
the commencement of the experiment.
Experiment No. 4
Place—My House in
London. Sensitive D, male, aged about 34.
On numerous occasions
this sensitive has been seen by all present, in gaslight shaded by red paper,
seated on his chair in a state of deep trance, and was heard to be breathing
heavily, whilst two materialized entities stood beside him; or with one
beside him, and the other standing five to eight feet away from him and close
to the sitters.
Again, two female
entities were seen simultaneously when this male sensitive was experimenting
with us, one of them inside the half-circle formed by the sixteen sitters, and
talking to them in a low sweet voice, at a distance of about eight feet from
the sensitive; whilst the other female entity passed through or over the
sitters, and, walking about the room outside the half-circle formed by the
sitters, came up behind two of them, and not only spoke audibly to them, but
also held a short conversation with the entity inside the ring, both speaking
almost instantaneously.
13.THE PHANTOM ARMIES SEEN IN FRANCE[17]
By
Hereward Carrington
History abounds in cases
showing the apparent intrusion of spiritual help in time of trouble, and in the
annals of military history these accounts are not lacking. On several occasions
the Crusaders thought that they saw angelic hosts fighting for them—phantom
horsemen charging the enemy, when their own utter destruction seemed imminent.
In the wars between the English and the Scotch, several such cases were cited,
and the Napoleonic wars also furnished examples. But the most striking evidence
of this character—because the newest—and supported, apparently, by a good deal
of first-hand and sincere testimony, is that afforded by the Phantom Armies
seen in France during the retreat of the British army from Mons—the field of
Agincourt. Cut off by overwhelming numbers, and all but annihilated, the
British army fought desperately, but the 80,000 were opposed by 300,000
Germans, backed by a terrific fire of artillery, and were indeed in a critical
position. They were only saved, as we know, by the heroism of a small force of
men—a rear-guard—who were practically wiped out in consequence. At the most
critical moment came what appeared to be angelic assistance. The tide of battle
seemed to be stemmed by supernatural means. In a letter written by a
soldier who actually witnessed these startling events, quoted by the Hon. Mrs.
St. John Mildmay (North American Review, August, 1915), the following
graphic account is given. Our soldier writes:
"The men joked at
the shells and found many funny names for them, and had bets about them, and
greeted them with music-hall songs, as they screamed in this terrific
cannonade. The climax seemed to have been reached, but 'a seven-times heated
hell' of the enemy's onslaught fell upon them, rending brother from brother. At
that very moment, they saw from their trenches a tremendous host moving against
their lines. Five hundred of the thousand (who had been detailed to fight the
rear-guard action) remained, and as far as they could see the German infantry
was pressing on against them, column by column, a gray world of men—10,000 of
them, as it appeared afterwards. There was no hope at all. Some of them shook
hands. One man improvised a new version of the battle song Tipperary, ending
'and we shan't get there!' And all went on firing steadily. The enemy dropped
line after line, while the few machine guns did their best. Every one knew it
was of no use. The dead gray bodies lay in companies and battalions, but others
came on and on, swarming and advancing from beyond and beyond.
"'World without
end. Amen!' said one of the British soldiers, with some irreverence, as he took
aim and fired. Then he remembered a vegetarian restaurant in London, where he
had once or twice eaten queer dishes of cutlets made of lentils and nuts that
pretended to be steaks. On all the plates in this restaurant a figure of St.
George was painted in blue with the motto, Adsit Anglis Sanctus
Georgius (May St. George be a present help to England). The soldier
happened to know 'Latin and other useless things,' so now, as he fired at the
gray advancing mass, 300 yards away, he uttered the pious vegetarian motto. He
went on firing to the end, till at last Bill on his right had to clout him
cheerfully on the head to make him stop, pointing out as he did so that the
King's ammunition cost money and was not lightly to be wasted. For, as the
Latin scholar uttered his invocation, he felt something between a shudder and
an electric shock pass through his body. The roar of the battle died down in
his ears to a gentle murmur, and instead of it, he says, he heard a great voice
louder than a thunder peal, crying 'Array! Array!' His heart grew hot as a
burning coal, then it grew cold as ice within him, for it seemed to him a
tumult of voices answered to the summons. He heard or seemed to hear thousands
shouting:
"'St. George! St.
George!
"'Ha! Messire, Ha!
Sweet Saint, grant us good deliverance!
"'St. George for
Merrie England!
"'Harow! Harow!
Monseigneur St. George, succour us, Ha! St. George! A low bow, and a strong
bow, Knight of Heaven, aid us!'
"As the soldier
heard these voices, he saw before him, beyond the trench, a long line of shapes
with a shining about them. They were like men who drew the bow, and with
another shout their cloud of arrows flew singing through the air toward
the German host. The other men in the trenches were firing all the while. They
had no hope, but they aimed just as if they had been shooting at Bisley.
"Suddenly one of
these lifted up his voice in plain English. 'Gawd help us!' he bellowed to the
man next him, 'but we're bloomin' marvels! Look at those gray gentlemen! Look
at them! They 're not going down in dozens or hundreds—it's thousands it
is! Look, look! There's a regiment gone while I'm talking to ye!'
"'Shut it,' the
other soldier bellowed, taking aim. 'What are ye talkin' about?' But he gulped
with astonishment even as he spoke, for indeed the gray men were falling by the
thousands. The English could hear the guttural scream of their revolvers as
they shot, and line after line crashed to the earth. All the while the
Latin-bred soldier heard the cry 'Harow, Harow! Monseigneur! Dear Saint! Quick
to our aid! St. George help us!'
"The singing arrows
darkened the air, the hordes melted before them. 'More machine guns,' Bill
yelled to Tom. 'Don't hear them,' Tom yelled back, 'but thank God, anyway, that
they have got it in the neck!'
"In fact, there
were ten thousand dead German soldiers left before that salient of the English
army, and consequently—no Sedan. In Germany the General Staff decided
that the English must have employed turpenite shells, as no wounds were
discernible on the bodies of the dead soldiers. But the man who knew what nuts
tasted like when they called themselves steak, knew also that St. George had
brought his Agincourt Bowmen to help the English."
Such accounts have been
confirmed by others. Thus, Miss Phyllis Campbell, writing in The Occult
Review (October, 1915), says:
"I tremble, now
that it is safely past, to look back on the terrible week that brought the
Allies to Vitry-le-François. We had not had our clothes off for the whole of
that week, because no sooner had we reached home, too weary to undress, or to
eat, and fallen on our beds, than the 'chug-chug' of the commandant's car would
sound into the silence of the deserted street, and the horn would imperatively
summon us back to duty—because, in addition to our duties as ambulancier
auxiliare, we were interpreters to the post, now at this moment diminished
to half a dozen.
"Returning at 4:30
in the morning, we stood on the end of the platform, watching the train crawl
through the blue-green mist of the forest into the clearing, and draw up with
the first wounded from Vitry-le-François. It was packed with dead and dying and
badly wounded. For a time we forgot our weariness in a race against
time—removing the dead and dying, and attending to those in need. I was
bandaging a man's shattered arm with the majeur instructing
me, while he stitched a horrible gap in his head, when Madame de A—, the heroic
president of the post, came and replaced me. 'There is an English in the fifth
wagon,' she said. 'He wants something—I think a holy picture!'
"The idea of an
English soldier wanting a holy picture struck me, even in that atmosphere of
blood and misery, as something to smile at—but I hurried away. 'The English'
was a Lancashire Fusilier. He was propped in a corner, his left arm tied-up in
a peasant woman's handkerchief, and his head newly bandaged. He should
have been in a state of collapse from loss of blood, for his tattered uniform
was soaked and caked in blood, and his face paper-white under the dirt of
conflict. He looked at me with bright, courageous eyes and asked for a picture
or a medal (he didn't care which) of St. George. I asked him if he was a
Catholic. 'No,' he was Wesleyan Methodist, and he wanted a picture or a medal
of St. George, because he had seen him on a white horse, leading
the British at Vitry-le-François, when the Allies turned.
"There was an F. R.
A. man, wounded in the leg, sitting beside him on the floor; he saw my look of
amazement, and hastened in: 'It's true, sister,' he said. 'We all saw it. First
there was a sort of yellow mist-like, sort of risin' before the Germans as they
came on the top of the hill—come on like a solid wall, they did—springing out
of the earth just solid—no end to 'em! I just give up. No use fighting the
whole German race, thinks I; it's all up with us. The next minute comes
this funny cloud of light, and when it clears off, there's a tall man with
yellow hair in golden armor, on a white horse, holding his sword up, and his
mouth open as if he was saying: "Come on, boys! I'll put the kybosh on the
devils!" Sort of "This is my picnic" expression. Then, before
you could say "knife," the Germans had turned, and we were after
them, fighting like ninety ..."
"Where was
this?" I asked. But neither of them could tell. They had marched, fighting
a rear-guard action, from Mons, till St. George had appeared through the haze
of light, and turned the enemy. They both knew it was St.
George. Hadn't they seen him with a sword on every 'quid' they'd ever seen? The
Frenchies had seen him too—ask them; but they said it was St. Michael...."
Much additional
testimony of a like nature might be given—and has been collected by students of
psychical research. If the spiritual world ever intervenes in matters mundane,
it assuredly did so on this occasion. And it could hardly have chosen a more
opportune time. Could the aspiring thoughts of the dead and dying, and those
still living and fighting for their country, have drawn "St. George"
to earth, to aid in again redeeming his country from a foreign foe? Could a
simple "hallucination" have been so widespread and so prevalent? Or
might there not have been some spiritual energy behind the visions thus
seen—stimulating them, and inspiring and encouraging the stricken soldiers? We
cannot say. We only know what the soldiers themselves say; and we also know the
undoubted effects upon the enemy. For on both occasions were the Germans
repulsed with terrible slaughter. Perhaps the vision of St. George led our
soldiers into closer touch and rapport with the consciousness
of some high intelligence—or the veil separating the two worlds was rent—as so
often appears to be the case in apparitions and visions of this character.
By
Andrew Jackson Davis, "The Seer"
When the hour of her
death arrived, I was fortunately in a proper state of mind and body to produce
the superior (clairvoyant) condition; but, previous to throwing my spirit into
that condition, I sought the most convenient and favorable position, that I
might be allowed to make the observations entirely unnoticed and undisturbed.
Thus situated and conditioned, I proceeded to observe and investigate the
mysterious processes of dying, and to learn what it is for an individual human
spirit to undergo the changes consequent upon physical death or external
dissolution. They were these:
I saw that the physical
organization could no longer subserve the diversified purposes or requirements
of the spiritual principle. But the various internal organs of the body
appeared to resist the withdrawal of the animating soul. The body and the soul,
like two friends, strongly resisted the various circumstances which rendered
their eternal separation imperative and absolute. These internal conflicts gave
rise to manifestations of what seemed to be, to the material senses, the most
thrilling and painful sensations; but I was unspeakably thankful and delighted
when I perceived and realized the fact that those physical manifestations were indications,
not of pain or unhappiness, but simply that the spirit was eternally dissolving
its co-partnership with the material organism.
Now the head of the body
became suddenly enveloped in a fine, soft, mellow, luminous atmosphere; and, as
instantly, I saw the cerebrum and the cerebellum expand their most interior
portions; I saw them discontinue their appropriate galvanic functions; and then
I saw that they became highly charged with the vital electricity and vital
magnetism which permeate subordinate systems and structures. That is to say,
the brain, as a whole, suddenly declared itself to be tenfold more positive,
over the lesser proportions of the body, than it ever was during the period of
health. This phenomenon invariably precedes physical dissolution.
Now the process of
dying, or the spirit's departure from the body, was fully commenced. The brain
began to attract the elements of electricity, of magnetism, of motion, of life,
and of sensation, into its various and numerous departments. The head became
intensely brilliant; and I particularly remarked that just in the same
proportion as the extremities of the organism grow dark and cold, the brain
appears light and glowing.
Now I saw, in the
mellow, spiritual atmosphere which emanated from and encircled her head, the
indistinct outlines of the formation of another head. This new
head unfolded more and more distinctly, and so indescribably compact and
intensely brilliant did it become, that I could neither see through it, nor
gaze upon it as steadily as I desired. While this spiritual head was being
eliminated and organized from out of and above the material head, I saw
that the surrounding aromal atmosphere which had emanated from the material
head was in great commotion; but, as the new head became more distinct and
perfect, this brilliant atmosphere gradually disappeared. This taught me that
those aromal elements, which were, in the beginning of the metamorphosis,
attracted from the system into the brain, and thence eliminated in the form of
an atmosphere, were indissolubly united in accordance with the divine principle
of affinity in the universe, which pervades and destinates every particle of
matter, and developed the spiritual head which I beheld.
In the identical manner
in which the spiritual head was eliminated and unchangeably organized, I saw,
unfolding in their natural progressive order, the harmonious development of the
neck, the shoulders, the breast and the entire spiritual organization. It
appeared from this, even to an unequivocal demonstration, that the innumerable
particles of what might be termed unparticled matter which constitute the man's
spiritual principle, are constitutionally endowed with certain elective
affinities, analogous to an immortal friendship. The innate tendencies which
the elements and essences of her soul manifested by uniting and organizing
themselves, were the efficient and imminent causes which unfolded and perfected
her spiritual organization. The defects and deformities of her physical body
were, in the spiritual body which I saw thus developed, almost completely
removed. In other words, it seemed that those hereditary obstructions and
influences were now removed, which originally arrested the full and proper development
of her physical constitution; and, therefore, that her spiritual constitution,
being elevated above those obstructions, was enabled to unfold and perfect
itself, in accordance with the universal tendencies of all created things.
While this spiritual
formation was going on, which was perfectly visible to my spiritual
perceptions, the material body manifested, to the outer vision of observing
individuals in the room, many symptoms of uneasiness and pain; but the
indications were totally deceptive; they were wholly caused by the departure of
the vital or spiritual forces from the extremities and viscera into the brain,
and thence into the ascending organism.
The spirit arose at
right angles over the head or brain of the deserted body. But immediately
previous to the final dissolution of the relationship which had for so many
years subsisted between the two, the spiritual and material bodies, I
saw—playing energetically between the feet of the elevated spiritual body and
the head of the prostrate physical body—a bright stream or current of vital
electricity. And here I perceived what I had never before obtained a knowledge
of, that a small portion of this vital electrical element returned to the
deserted body immediately subsequent to the separation of the umbilical thread;
and that that portion of this element which passed back into the earthly
organism instantly diffused itself through the entire structure, and thus
prevented immediate decomposition.
As soon as the spirit,
whose departing hour I thus watched, was wholly disengaged from the tenacious
physical body, I directed my attention to the movements and emotions of
the former; and I saw her begin to breathe the most interior or spiritual
portions of the surrounding terrestrial atmosphere. At first it seemed with
difficulty that she could breathe the new medium; but in a few seconds she
inhaled and exhaled the spiritual elements of nature with the greatest possible
ease and delight. And now I saw that she was in possession of exterior and
physical proportions, which were identical, in every possible
particular—improved and beautified—with those proportions which characterized
her earthly organization. Indeed, so much like her former self was she that,
had her friends beheld her as I did, they certainly would have exclaimed—as we
often do upon the sudden return of a long-absent friend, who leaves us and
returns in health—'Why, how well you look! How improved you are!' Such was the
nature—most beautifying in their extent—of the improvements that were wrought
upon her.
I saw her continue to
conform and accustom herself to the new elements and elevating sensations which
belong to the inner life. I did not particularly notice the workings and
emotions of her newly-awakening and fast-unfolding spirit, except that I was
careful to remark her philosophical tranquillity throughout the entire process,
and her non-participation with the different members of her family in their
unrestrained bewailing of her departure from the earth, to unfold in Love and
Wisdom throughout eternal spheres. She understood at a glance that they could
only gaze upon the cold and lifeless form, which she had but just deserted; and
she readily comprehended the fact that it was owing to a want of true knowledge
upon their parts that they thus vehemently regretted her merely physical
death.
The period required to
accomplish the entire change which I saw was not far from two hours and a half;
but this furnished no rule as to the time required for every spirit to elevate
and reorganize itself above the head of the outer form. Without changing my
position or spiritual perceptions I continued to observe the movements of her
new-born spirit. As soon as she became accustomed to her new elements which
surrounded her, she descended from her elevated position, which was immediately
over the body, by an effort of the will-power, and directly passed out of the
door of the bedroom in which she had lain, in the material form, prostrated
with disease for several weeks. It being in a summer month, the doors were all
open, and her egress from the house was attended with no obstruction. I saw her
pass through the adjoining room, out of the door, and step from the house into
the atmosphere! I was overwhelmed with delight and astonishment when, for the
first time, I realized the universal truth that the spiritual organization can
tread the atmosphere, which is impossible while in the coarser earthly form—so
much more refined is man's spiritual constitution. She walked in the atmosphere
as easily, and in the same manner, as we tread the earth and ascend an
eminence. Immediately upon her emergement from the house, she was joined by two
friendly spirits from the spiritual country, and after tenderly recognizing and
communing with each other, the three, in the most graceful manner, began
ascending obliquely through the ethereal envelopment of her globe. They walked
so naturally and fraternally together that I could scarcely realize the
fact that they trod the air—they seemed to be walking upon the side of a
glorious but familiar mountain. I continued to gaze upon them until the
distance shut them from my view,—whereupon I returned to my external and
ordinary condition.
000
This account of the
facts—of what actually happened at death—is confirmed by numerous other
witnesses, who agree as to the main details.
15.THE SUPERNORMAL: EXPERIENCES
By
St. John B. Seymour
When Mrs. Seymour was a
little girl she resided in Dublin; amongst the members of the family was her
paternal grandmother. This old lady was not as kind as she might have been to
her granddaughter, and consequently the latter was somewhat afraid of her. In
process of time the grandmother died. Mrs. Seymour, who was then about eight
years of age, had to pass the door of the room where the death occurred in
order to reach her own bedroom, which was a flight higher up. Past this door
the child used to fly in terror with all possible speed. On one occasion,
however, as she was preparing to make the usual rush past, she distinctly felt
a hand placed on her shoulder, and became conscious of a voice saying,
"Don't be afraid, Mary!" From that day on the child never had the least
feeling of fear, and always walked quietly past the door.
The Rev. D. B. Knox
sends a curious personal experience, which was shared by him with three other
people. He writes as follows: "Not very long ago my wife and I were
preparing to retire for the night. A niece, who was in the house, was in her
bedroom and the door was open. The maid had just gone to her room. All four[ of us distinctly heard the heavy step of a man
walking along the corridor, apparently in the direction of the bathroom. We
searched the whole house immediately, but no one was discovered. Nothing
untoward happened except the death of the maid's mother about a fortnight
later. It was a detached house, so that the noise could not have been made by
the neighbors."
In the following tale
the "double" or "wraith" of a living man was seen by three
different people, one of whom, our correspondent, saw it through a telescope.
She writes: "In May, 1883, the parish of A— was vacant, so Mr. D—, the
Diocesan Curate, used to come out to take service on Sundays. One day there
were two funerals to be taken, the one at a graveyard some distance off, the
other at A— churchyard. My brother was at both, the far-off one being taken the
first. The house we then lived in looked down towards A—churchyard, which was
about a quarter of a mile away. From an upper window my sister and I saw two surpliced
figures going out to meet the coffin, and said, 'Why, there are two clergy!'
having supposed that there would be only Mr. D—. I, being short-sighted, used a
telescope, and saw the two surplices showing between the people. But when my
brother returned he said: 'A strange thing has happened. Mr. D— and Mr. W—
(curate of a neighboring parish) took the far-off funeral. I saw them both
again at A—, but when I went into the vestry I only saw Mr. W—. I asked where
Mr. D— was, and he replied that he had left immediately after the first
funeral, as he had to go to Kilkenny, and that he (Mr. W—) had come on alone to
take the funeral at A—.'"
Here is a curious tale
from the city of Limerick of a lady's "double" being seen, with no
consequent results. It is sent by Mr. Richard Hogan as the personal experience
of his sister, Mrs. Mary Murnane. On Saturday, October 25, 1913, at half-past
four o'clock in the afternoon, Mr. Hogan left the house in order to purchase
some cigarettes. A quarter of an hour afterwards Mrs. Murnane went down the
town to do some business. As she was walking down George Street she saw a group
of four persons standing on the pavement engaged in conversation. They were her
brother, a Mr. O'S—, and two ladies, a Miss P. O'D—, and her sister, Miss M.
O'D—. She recognized the latter, as her face was partly turned towards her, and
noted that she was dressed in a knitted coat, and light blue hat, while in her
left hand she held a bag or purse; the other lady's back was turned towards
her. As Mrs. Murnane was in a hurry to get her business done she determined to
pass them by without being noticed, but a number of people coming in the
opposite direction blocked the way, and compelled her to walk quite close to
the group of four, but they were so intent on listening to what one lady was
saying that they took no notice of her. The speaker appeared to be Miss M.
O'D—, and though Mrs. Murnane did not actually hear her speak as
she passed her, yet from their attitudes the other three seemed to be listening
to what she was saying, and she heard her laugh when right
behind her—not the laugh of her sister P—and the laugh was repeated after she
had left the group a little behind.
So far there is nothing
out of the common. When Mrs. Murnane returned to her house about an hour later she
found her brother Richard there before her. She casually mentioned to him how
she had passed him and his three companions on the pavement. To which he
replied that she was quite correct except in one point, namely that there were
only three in the group, as M. O'D— was not present,
as she had not come to Limerick at all that day. She then described to him the
exact position each one of the four occupied, and the clothes worn by them, to
all of which facts he assented, except as to the presence of Miss M. O'D—. Mrs.
Murnane adds, "That is all I can say in the matter, but most certainly the
fourth person was in the group, as I both saw and heard her. She wore the same
clothes I had seen on her previously, with the exception of the hat; but the
following Saturday she had on the same colored hat I had seen on her the
previous Saturday. When I told her about it she was as much mystified as I was
and am. My brother stated that there was no laugh from any of the three
present."
Mrs. G. Kelly sends an
experience of a "wraith" which seems in some mysterious way to have
been conjured up in her mind by the description she had heard, and then
externalized. She writes: "About four years ago a musical friend of ours
was staying in the house. He and my husband were playing and singing Dvorak's
'Spectre's Bride,' a work which he had studied with the composer himself. This
music appealed very much to both, and they were excited and enthusiastic over
it. Our friend was giving many personal reminiscences of Dvorak, and his method
of explaining the way he wanted his work done. I was sitting by, an interested
listener, for some time. On getting up at last, and going into the
drawing-room, I was startled and somewhat frightened to find a man standing
there in a shadowy part of the room. I saw him distinctly, and could describe
his appearance accurately. I called out, and the two men ran in, but as the
apparition only lasted for a second, they were too late. I described the man
whom I had seen, whereupon our friend exclaimed, 'Why, that was Dvorak
himself!' At that time I had never seen a picture of Dvorak, but when our
friend returned to London he sent me one which I recognized as the likeness of
the man whom I had seen in our drawing-room."
A curious vision, a case
of second sight, in which a quite unimportant event, previously unknown, was
revealed, is sent by the percipient, who is a lady well known to both the
compilers, and a life-long friend of one of them. She says: "Last summer I
sent a cow to the fair of Limerick, a distance of about thirteen miles, and the
men who took her there the day before the fair left her in a paddock for the night
close to Limerick city. I awoke up very early next morning, and was fully awake
when I saw (not with my ordinary eyesight, but apparently inside my
head) a light, an intensely brilliant light, and in it I saw the back gate
being opened by a red-haired woman and the cow I had supposed in the fair
walking through the gate. I then knew that the cow must be home, and going to
the yard later on I was met by the wife of the man who was in charge in a great
state of excitement. 'Oh law! Miss,' she exclaimed, 'you'll be mad! Didn't
Julia [a red-haired woman] find the cow outside the lodge gate as she was going
out at 4 o'clock to the milking!' That's my tale—perfectly true, and I
would give a good deal to be able to control that light, and see more if I
could."
Another curious vision
was seen by a lady who is also a friend of both the compilers. One night she
was kneeling at her bedside saying her prayers (hers was the only bed in the
room), when suddenly she felt a distinct touch on her shoulder. She turned round
in the direction of the touch and saw at the end of the room a bed, with a
pale, indistinguishable figure laid therein, and what appeared to be a
clergyman standing over it. About a week later she fell into a long and
dangerous illness.
An account of a dream
which implied an extraordinary coincidence, if coincidence it be and nothing
more, was sent as follows by a correspondent, who requested that no names be
published. "That which I am about to relate has a peculiar interest for
me, inasmuch as the central figure in it was my own grand-aunt, and moreover
the principal witness (if I may use such a term) was my father. At the period
during which this strange incident occurred my father was living with his aunt
and some other relatives.
"One morning at the
breakfast-table, my grand-aunt announced that she had had a most peculiar dream
during the previous night. My father, who was always very interested in that
kind of thing, took down in his notebook all the particulars concerning it.
They were as follows:
"My grand-aunt
dreamt that she was in a cemetery, which she recognized as Glasnevin, and as
she gazed at the memorials of the dead which lay so thick around, one stood out
most conspicuously, and caught her eye, for she saw clearly cut on the
cold white stone an inscription bearing her own name:
CLARE·S·D—
Died 14th of March, 1873
Dearly loved and ever mourned
R.I.P.
while, to add to the
peculiarity of it, the date on the stone as given above was, from the day of
her dream, exactly a year in advance.
"My grand-aunt was
not very nervous, and soon the dream faded from her mind. Months rolled by, and
one morning at breakfast it was noticed that my grand-aunt had not appeared,
but as she was a very religious woman it was thought that she had gone out to
church. However, as she did not appear my father sent someone to her room to
see if she were there, and as no answer was given to repeated knocking the door
was opened, and my grand-aunt was found kneeling at her bedside, dead. The day
of her death was March 14, 1873, corresponding exactly with the date seen in
her dream a twelvemonth before. My grand-aunt was buried in Glasnevin, and on
her tombstone (a white marble slab) was placed the inscription which she had
read in her dream." Our correspondent sent us a photograph of the stone
and its inscription.
The present Archdeacon
of Limerick, Ven. J. A. Haydn, LL.D., sends the following experience: "In
the year 1870 I was rector of the little rural parish of Chapel Russell. One
autumn day the rain fell with a quiet, steady, and hopeless persistence from
morning to night. Wearied at length from the gloom, and tired of reading
and writing, I determined to walk to the church about half a mile away, and
pass a half-hour playing the harmonium, returning for the lamp-light and tea.
"I wrapped up, put
the key of the church in my pocket, and started. Arriving at the church, I
walked up the straight avenue, bordered with graves and tombs on either side,
while the soft, steady rain quietly pattered on the trees. When I reached the
church door, before putting the key in the lock, moved by some indefinable
impulse I stood on the doorstep, turned round, and looked back upon the path I
had just trodden. My amazement may be imagined when I saw, seated on a low,
tabular tombstone close to the avenue, a lady with her back towards me. She was
wearing a black velvet jacket or short cape, with a narrow border of vivid
white; her head and luxuriant jet-black hair were surmounted by a hat of the
shape and make that I think used to be called at that time a 'turban'; it was
also of black velvet, with a snow-white wing or feather at the right-hand side
of it. It may be seen how deliberately and minutely I observed the appearance,
when I can thus recall it after more than forty years.
"Actuated by a
desire to attract the attention of the lady, and induce her to look towards me,
I noisily inserted the key in the door, and suddenly opened it with a rusty
crack. Turning around to see the effect of my policy—the lady was gone!—vanished.
Not yet daunted, I hurried to the place, which was not ten paces away, and
closely searched the stone and the space all around it, but utterly in vain;
there were absolutely no traces of the late presence of a human being! I may
add that nothing particular or remarkable followed the singular
apparition, and that I never heard anything calculated to throw any light on
the mystery."
Here is a story of a
ghost who knew what it wanted—and got it! "In the part of County Wicklow
from which my people come," writes a Miss D—, "there was a family who
were not exactly related, but of course of the clan. Many years ago a young
daughter, aged about twenty, died. Before her death she had directed her
parents to bury her in a certain graveyard. But for some reason they did not do
so, and from that hour she gave them no peace. She appeared to them at all
hours, especially when they went to the well for water. So distracted were
they, that at length they got permission to exhume the remains and have them
reinterred in the desired graveyard. This they did by torchlight—a weird scene
truly! I can vouch for the truth of this latter portion, at all events, as some
of my own relatives were present."
Mr. T. J. Westropp
contributes a tale of a ghost of an unusual type, i.e. one which actually did
communicate matters of importance to his family. "A lady who related many
ghost stories to me, also told me how, after her father's death, the family
could not find some papers or receipts of value. One night she awoke, and heard
a sound which she at once recognized as the footsteps of her father, who was
lame. The door creaked, and she prayed that she might be able to see him. Her
prayer was granted: she saw him distinctly holding a yellow parchment book tied
with tape. 'F—, child,' said he, 'this is the book your mother is looking for.
It is in the third drawer of the cabinet near the cross-door; tell your
mother to be more careful in future about business papers.' Incontinently he
vanished, and she at once awoke her mother, in whose room she was sleeping, who
was very angry and ridiculed the story, but the girl's earnestness at length
impressed her. She got up, went to the old cabinet, and at once found the
missing book in the third drawer."
Here is another tale of
an equally useful and obliging ghost. "A gentleman, a relative of my
own," writes a lady, "often received warnings from his dead father of
things that were about to happen. Besides the farm on which he lived, he had
another some miles away which adjoined a large demesne. Once in a great storm a
fir-tree was blown down in the demesne, and fell into his field. The woodranger
came to him and told him he might as well cut up the tree, and take it away.
Accordingly one day he set out for this purpose, taking with him two men and a
cart. He got into the fields by a stile, while his men went on to a gate. As he
approached a gap between two fields he saw his father standing in it, as
plainly as he ever saw him in life, and beckoning him back warningly. Unable to
understand this, he still advanced, whereupon his father looked very angry, and
his gestures became imperious. This induced him to turn away, so he sent his
men home, and left the tree uncut. He subsequently discovered that a plot had
been laid by the woodranger, who coveted his farm, and who hoped to have him
dispossessed by accusing him of stealing the tree."
A clergyman in the
diocese of Clogher gave a personal experience of table-turning to the present
Dean of St. Patrick's, who kindly sent the same to the writer. He said:
"When I was a young man, I met some friends one evening, and we decided to
amuse ourselves with table-turning. The local dispensary was vacant at the
time, so we said that if the table would work we should ask who would be
appointed as medical officer. As we sat round it touching it with our hands it
began to knock. We said:
"'Who are you?'
"The table spelt
out the name of a bishop of the Church of Ireland. We asked, thinking that the
answer was absurd, as we knew him to be alive and well:
"'Are you dead?'
"The table answered
'Yes.'
"We laughed at this
and asked:
"'Who will be
appointed to the dispensary!'
"The table spelt
out the name of a stranger, who was not one of the candidates, whereupon we
left off, thinking that the whole thing was nonsense.
"The next morning I
saw in the papers that the bishop in question had died that afternoon about two
hours before our meeting, and a few days afterwards I saw the name of the
stranger as the new dispensary doctor. I got such a shock that I determined
never to have anything to do with table-turning again."
The following
extraordinary personal experience is sent by a lady, well-known to the present
writer, but who requests that all names be omitted. Whatever explanation we may
give of it, the good faith of the tale is beyond doubt.
"Two or three
months after my father-in-law's death, my husband, myself, and three small sons
lived in the west of Ireland. As my husband was a young barrister, he had
to be absent from home a good deal. My three boys slept in my bedroom, the
eldest being about four, the youngest some months. A fire was kept up every
night, and with a young child to look after, I was naturally awake more than
once during the night. For many nights I believed I distinctly saw my father-in-law
sitting by the fireside. This happened, not once or twice, but many times. He
was passionately fond of his eldest grandson, who lay sleeping calmly in his
cot. Being so much alone probably made me restless and uneasy, though I never
felt afraid. I mentioned this strange thing to a friend who had known and liked
my father-in-law, and she advised me to 'have his soul laid,' as she termed it.
Though I was a Protestant and she was a Roman Catholic (as had also been my
father-in-law), yet I fell in with her suggestion. She told me to give a coin
to the next beggar that came to the house, telling him (or her) to pray for the
rest of Mr. So-and-so's soul. A few days later a beggar-woman and her children
came to the door, to whom I gave a coin and stated my desire. To my great
surprise I learned from her manner that such requests were not unusual. Well,
she went down on her knees on the steps, and prayed with apparent earnestness
and devotion that his soul might find repose. Once again he appeared, and seemed
to say to me, 'Why did you do that, E——? To come and sit here was the only
comfort I had.' Never again did he appear, and strange to say, after a lapse of
more than thirty years I have felt regret at my selfishness in interfering.
"After his death,
as he lay in the house awaiting burial, and I was in a house some ten miles
away, I thought that he came and told me that I would have a hard life,
which turned out only too truly. I was then young, and full of life, with every
hope of a prosperous future."
Of all the strange
beliefs to be found in Ireland that in the Black Dog is the most widespread.
There is hardly a parish in the country but could contribute some tale relative
to this specter, though the majority of these are short, and devoid of interest.
There is said to be such a dog just outside the avenue gate of Donohill
Rectory, but neither of the compilers have had the good luck to see it. It may
be, as some hold, that this animal was originally a cloud or nature-myth; at
all events, it has now descended to the level of an ordinary haunting. The most
circumstantial story that we have met with relative to the Black Dog is that
related as follows by a clergyman of the Church of Ireland, who requests us to
refrain from publishing his name.
"In my childhood I
lived in the country. My father, in addition to his professional duties,
sometimes did a little farming in an amateurish sort of way. He did not keep a
regular staff of laborers, and consequently when anything extra had to be done,
such as hay-cutting or harvesting, he used to employ day-laborers to help with
the work. At such times I used to enjoy being in the fields with the men,
listening to their conversation. On one occasion I heard a laborer remark that
he had once seen the devil! Of course I was interested and asked him to give me
his experience. He said he was walking along a certain road, and when he came
to a point where there was an entrance to a private place (the spot was well
known to me), he saw a black dog sitting on the roadside. At the time he
paid no attention to it, thinking it was an ordinary retriever, but after he
had passed on about two or three hundred yards he found the dog was beside him,
and then he noticed that its eyes were blood-red. He stooped down, and picked
up some stones in order to frighten it away, but though he threw the stones at
it they did not injure it, nor indeed did they seem to have any effect.
Suddenly, after a few moments, the dog vanished from his sight.
"Such was the
laborer's tale. After some years, during which time I had forgotten altogether
about the man's story, some friends of my own bought the place at the entrance
to which the apparition had been seen. When my friends went to reside there I
was a constant visitor at their house. Soon after their arrival they began to
be troubled by the appearance of a black dog. Though I never saw it myself, it
appeared to many members of the family. The avenue leading to the house was a
long one, and it was customary for the dog to appear and accompany people for
the greater portion of the way. Such an effect had this on my friends that they
soon gave up the house, and went to live elsewhere. This was a curious
corroboration of the laborer's tale."
A distinction must be
drawn between the so-called Headless Coach, which portends
death, and the Phantom Coach, which appears to be a harmless
sort of vehicle. With regard to the latter we give two tales below, the first
of which was sent by a lady whose father was a clergyman, and a gold medalist
of Trinity College, Dublin.
"Some years ago my
family lived in County Down. Our house was some way out of a fair-sized
manufacturing town, and had a short avenue which ended in a gravel sweep in
front of the hall door. One winter's evening, when my father was returning from
a sick call, a carriage going at a sharp pace passed him on the avenue. He
hurried on, thinking it was some particular friends, but when he reached the
door no carriage was to be seen, so he concluded it must have gone round to the
stables. The servant who answered his ring said that no visitors had been
there, and he, feeling certain that the girl had made some mistake, or that
some one else had answered the door, came into the drawing-room to make further
inquiries. No visitors had come, however, though those sitting in the
drawing-room had also heard the carriage drive up.
"My father was most
positive as to what he had seen, viz. a closed carriage with lamps lit; and let
me say at once that he was a clergyman who was known throughout the whole of
the north of Ireland as a most level-headed man, and yet to the day of his
death he would insist that he met that carriage on our avenue.
"One day in July
one of our servants was given leave to go home for the day, but was told she
must return by a certain train. For some reason she did not come by it, but by
a much later one, and rushed into the kitchen in a most penitent frame of mind.
'I am so sorry to be late,' she told the cook, 'especially as there were
visitors. I suppose they stayed to supper, as they were so late going away, for
I met the carriage on the avenue.' The cook thereupon told her that no one had
been at the house, and hinted that she must have seen the ghost-carriage,
a statement that alarmed her very much, as the story was well known in the
town, and car-drivers used to whip up their horses as they passed our gate,
while pedestrians refused to go at all except in numbers. We have often heard
the carriage, but these are the only two occasions on which I can positively
assert that it was seen."
The following personal
experience of the phantom coach was given to the present writer by Mr. Matthias
Fitzgerald, coachman to Miss Cooke, of Cappagh House, County Limerick. He
stated that one moonlight night he was driving along the road from Askeaton to
Limerick when he heard coming up behind him the roll of wheels, the clatter of
horses' hoofs, and the jingling of the bits. He drew over to his own side to
let this carriage pass, but nothing passed. He then looked back, but could see
nothing, the road was perfectly bare and empty, though the sounds were
perfectly audible. This continued for about a quarter of an hour or so, until
he came to a cross-road, down one arm of which he had to turn. As he turned off
he heard the phantom carriage dash by rapidly along the straight road. He
stated that other persons had had similar experiences on the same road.
16.NATURE-SPIRITS OR ELEMENTALS[18]
BY NIZIDA
"Life is one
all-pervading principle, and even the thing that seems to die and putrefy but
engenders new life and changes to new forms of matter. Reasoning, then, by
analogy—if not a leaf, if not a drop of water, but is, no less than yonder
star, a habitable and breathing world, common sense would suffice to teach that
the circumfluent Infinite, which you call space—the boundless Impalpable which
divides the earth from the moon and stars—is filled also with its correspondent
and appropriate life."—Zanoni.
Within the last fifty
years the human mind has been awakening slowly to the fact that there is a
world, invisible to ordinary powers of vision, existing in close juxtaposition
to the world cognized by our material senses. This world, or condition of
existence for more ethereal beings, has been variously called Spirit-world,
Summer-land, Astral-world, Hades, Kama-loca, or Desire-world, etc. Slowly and
with difficulty do ideas upon the nature and characteristics of this world dawn
upon the modern mind. The imagination, swayed by pictures of sensuous life,
revels in the fantastic imagery it attributes to this unknown and dimly
conceived state of existence, more often picturing what is false than what is
true. Generally speaking, the most crude conceptions are entertained; these
embrace but two conditions of life, the embodied and disembodied, for
which there are only the earth and heaven, or hell, with that intermediate
state accepted by Roman Catholics, called purgatory. There is, therefore, for
such minds, only two orders of beings, i.e., mankind, and angels or
devils, categorically termed spirits; but what would be the mode of
life of those spirits, is a subject upon which ordinary intellects can throw no
light at all. Their ideas are walled in by an impenetrable darkness, and not a
ray of light glimmers across the unfathomable gulf lying beyond the grave; that
portal of death which, for them, opens upon unknown darkness, and closes upon
the light, vivacity, and gaiety of the earth.
The idea that the beings
we would term disembodied do actually inhabit bodies of an
aerial substance, invisible to our grosser senses, in a world exactly suited to
their needs, surpasses the comprehension of an ordinary understanding, which
can conceive only of gross matter, visible and tangible. Yet science begins to
talk of mind-stuff, or soul-substance, in reality that
ethereal substance which ranks next to dense matter, and which it wears as an
external, more hardened shell. For there is space within space. Once realizing
the existence of an inner world, we shall find that all our ideas
concerning space, time, and every particular of our existence, and the world we
live in must become entirely revolutionized.
The principal source of
knowledge which has been opened in modern times concerning the next state of
existence has revealed itself in a manner homogeneous to itself. It has come by
an interior method—a revelation from within acting upon the without. The inner
world, although always acting upon and through its external covering, in a
hidden or veiled way, as from an inscrutable cause, has manifested itself in a
manner more overt and cognizable by the bodily senses of man. At least that
which has usually been termed, with more or less awe, the supernatural,
the ghostly, has impinged upon the mental incrassation of sensual
man as a thing to be reckoned with in daily life; no longer to be relegated to
the region of vague darkness d'outre tombe. Hence the human mind is
being awakened to study and dive into the depths of that life within life,
wherein dwell the disembodied, the so-called dead, the angels,
and, per contra, the devils. Those hidden aerial and ethereal
regions, wherein the souls of things, and beings, draw life
from the bosom of nature; wherein they find their active habitat;
wherein nature keeps a store of objects more wonderful, and infinitely more
varied, than serve for her regions of dense matter; wherein man can discern the
occult causes and beginnings of all things, even of his own thoughts; and
whereupon he learns, at length, that he possesses the power of projecting by
thought-creation forms more or less endued with life and intelligence, which
compose his mental world, and with which he, as it were, "peoples
space." He finds the sphere of his responsibilities immensely enlarged by
this new knowledge, of which he is taking the first honeyed sips, delighted
with the self-importance which the heretofore unsuspected power of diving into
the unseen seems to bestow. If hitherto he has had to hold himself responsible
for the consequences of his external actions, that they should not militate
against the order of society as regards the laws of morality and virtue, he has
at least acted upon the impression that his secret thoughts were
his own, and remained with him, affecting no one but himself; were incognizable
in their veiled chambers, and of which it was not necessary to take any notice;
the transitory, evanescent, spontaneous workings of mind, unknown and
inscrutable, which begin and end like the flight of a bird, whence coming and
where going it is impossible to know.
By the first faint
gleams of the light of hidden wisdom, which are beginning to dawn upon his
mind, he now perceives that responsibility does not end upon the plane of
earth, but extends into the aerial regions of that inner world where his
thoughts are no longer secret, and where they affect the astral currents,
acting for the good or detriment of others to almost infinite extent; that he
may act upon the ambient atmospheres, not only of the outer but inner planes of
life, like a plant of poisonous exhalations, if his thoughts be not pure and
good; peopling unseen space with the outcome of a debased
mind, in the shape of hideous and maleficent creatures. He becomes responsible,
therefore, for the consequences of his mental actions and thought-life, as well
as those actions carefully prepared to pass unchallenged before this world's
gaze.
Diving into the unseen
by the light of the new spiritual knowledge now radiating into all minds, we
learn that there are three degrees of life in man, the material, the aerial,
and the ethereal, corresponding to body, soul, and spirit; and that there are
three corresponding planes of existence inhabited by beings suited to them.
The subject of our paper
will limit us at present to the aerial, or soul-plane—the next contiguous, or
astral world. The beings that more especially live in this realm of the
soul, have by common consent been termed elementals. Nature in
illimitable space teems with life in forms ethereal, evanescent as thought
itself, or more objectively condensed and solidified, according to the inherent
attraction which holds them together; enduring according to the force, energy,
or power which gave them birth; intelligent, or non-intelligent, from the same
source, which is mental. These spirits of the soul-world are possessed of
aerial bodies, and their world has its own firmament, its own atmosphere and
conditions of existence, its own objects, scenes, habitations. Yet their world
and the world of man intermingle, interpenetrate, and "throw their shadows
upon each other," says Paracelsus. Again, he says: "As there are in
our world water and fire, harmonies and contrasts, visible bodies and invisible
essences, likewise these beings are varied in their constitution, and have
their own peculiarities, for which human beings have no comprehension."
Matter, as known to men
in bodies, is seen and felt by means of the physical senses; but to beings not
provided with such senses, the things of our world are as invisible and
intangible as things of more ethereal substance are to our grosser senses.
Elementals which find their habitat in the interior of the earth's shell,
usually called gnomes, are not conscious of the density of the
element of earth as we perceive it; but breathe in a free atmosphere, and
behold objects of which we cannot form the remotest conception. In like manner
exist the undines in water, sylphs in air,
and salamanders in fire. The elementals of the air, sylphs,
are said to be friendly towards man; those of the water, undines, are
malicious. The salamanders can, but rarely do, associate with man, "on
account of the fiery nature of the element they inhabit." The pigmies
(gnomes) are friendly; but as they are the guardians of treasure they usually
oppose the approach of man, baffling by many mysterious arts the selfish greed
of seekers for buried wealth. We, however, read of their alluring miners either
by stroke of pick, or hammer, or by floating lights to the best mineral
"leads." Paracelsus says of these subterranean elementals that they
build houses, vaults, and strange-looking edifices of certain immaterial
substances unknown to us. "They have some kind of alabaster, marble,
cement, etc., but these substances are as different from ours as the web of a
spider is different from our linen."
These inhabitants of the
elements, or "nature-spirits," may, or may not be, conscious of the
existence of man; oftentimes feeling him merely as a force which propels, or
arrests them; for by his will and by his thought, he acts upon the astral
currents of the aerial world in which they live; and by the use of his hands he
sways the material elements of earth, fire, and water wherein they are
established. They perceive the soul-essence of man with its "currents and
forms," and they also are capable of reading such thoughts as do not
spiritually transcend their powers of discernment. They perceive the states of
feeling and emotions of men by the "colors and impressions
produced in their auras," and may thus irresistibly be drawn into overt
action upon man's plane of life. They are the invisible stone-throwers we
hear of so frequently, supposed to be human spirits; the
perpetrators of mischief, such as destruction of property in the habitations of
men, noises, and mysterious nocturnal annoyances.
Of all writers upon
occult subjects to whose works we have as yet gained access, Paracelsus throws
the greatest light upon these tricky sprites celebrated in the realm of poesy,
and inhabiting that disputed land popularly termed fairydom. From open vision,
and that wonderful insight of the master or adept into the secrets of nature,
Paracelsus is able to give us the most positive information concerning their
bodily formation, the nature of their existence, and other extraordinary
particulars, which proves that he has actually seen and observed them, and
doubtless also employed them as the obedient servants of his purified will; a
power into which the spiritual man ascends by a species of right, when he has
thrown off, or conquered, the thraldom of matter in his own body, and stands
open-eyed at "the portals of his deep within."
We will quote certain
extracts from the pages of this wonderful interpreter of nature. "There
are two kinds of flesh. One that comes from Adam, and another that does not
come from Adam. The former is gross material, visible and tangible for us; the
other one is not tangible and not made from earth. If a man who is a descendant
from Adam wants to pass through a wall, he will have first to make a hole
through it; but a being who is not descended from Adam needs no hole nor door,
but may pass through matter that appears solid to us without causing any damage
to it. The beings not descended from Adam, as well as those descended from him,
are organized and have substantial bodies; but there is as much difference
between the substance composing their bodies as there is between matter and
spirit. Yet the elementals are not spirits, because they have flesh,
blood, and bones; they live and propagate offspring; they eat and talk, act and
sleep, etc., and consequently they cannot be properly called spirits. They are
beings occupying a place between man and spirits, resembling men and women in
their organization and form, and resembling spirits in the rapidity of their
locomotion. They are intermediary beings or composita, formed out of two parts
joined into one; just as two colors mixed together will appear as one color,
resembling neither one nor the other of the two original ones. The elementals
have no higher principles; they are therefore not immortal, and when they die
they perish like animals. Neither water nor fire can injure them, and they
cannot be locked up in our material prisons. They are, however, subject to diseases.
Their costumes, actions, forms, ways of speaking, etc., are not very unlike
those of human beings; but there are a great many varieties. They have only
animal intellects, and are incapable of spiritual development."
In saying the elementals
have "no higher principles," and "When they die they perish like
animals," Paracelsus does not stop to explain that the higher principles
in them are absolutely latent, as in plants; and that animals in
"perishing" are not destroyed, but the psychical or soul-part of the
animal passes, by the processes of evolution, into higher forms.
"Each species moves
only in the element to which it belongs, and neither of them can go out of its
appropriate element, which is to them as the air is to us, or the water to
fishes; and none of them can live in the element belonging to another class. To
each elemental being the element in which it lives is transparent, invisible, and
respirable, as the atmosphere is to ourselves."
"As far as the
personalities of the elementals are concerned, it may be said that those
belonging to the element of water resemble human beings of either sex; those of
the air are greater and stronger; the salamanders are long, lean, and dry; the
pigmies (gnomes) are the length of about two spans, but they may extend or
elongate their forms until they appear like giants.
"Nymphs (undines,
or naiads) have their residences and palaces in the element of water; sylphs
and salamanders have no fixed dwellings. Salamanders have been seen in the
shape of fiery balls, or tongues of fire running over the fields or appearing
in houses;" or at psychical séances as starry lights, darting and dancing
about.
"There are certain
localities where large numbers of elementals live together, and it has occurred
that a man has been admitted into their communities and lived with them for a
while, and that they have become visible and tangible to him."
Poets, in their moments
of exaltation, have an unconscious soul-vision before which nature's invisible
worlds lie like an open volume, and they translate her secrets into language of
mystic meanings whose harmonies are re-interpreted by sympathetic minds. The
poet Hogg, in his Rapture of Kilmeny, would seem to have had a
vision of some such visit as that described above, into the fairyland of pure,
peaceful elementals.
"Bonny Kilmeny gaed
up the glen"—and is represented as having fallen asleep. During this sleep
she is transported to "a far countrye," whose gentle, lovely
inhabitants receive her with delight. The following lines reveal the
poet's power of inner vision, as will be seen by the words italicized. They are
in wonderful accord with the descriptions given by Paracelsus from the actual
observation of a conscious seer:
"They lifted
Kilmeny, they led her away,And she walk'd in the light of a sunless day;The
sky was a dome of crystal bright,The fountain of vision and
fountain of light;The emerald fields were of dazzling glow,And
the flowers of everlasting blow."
It needs but a brushing
away of the films of flesh, which occurs in moments of rapt inspiration, for
the soul, escaping from its prison-house, to revel in the innocent, peaceful
scenes of its own inner world, and give a true description of what it beholds.
The inner meanings of things, the symbolical correspondences are revealed in a
flash of light, and the poet-soul becomes revelator and prophet all in one. He
sets it down to imagination and fancy, when he returns into his normal state,
and it is what we call "a flight of genius"—the power of the soul to
enter its own appropriate world. Certainly les ames de boue have
no such power. It is, however, a proof that world exists, if we
will but understand it aright.
There has never existed
a poet with a truer conception of "elemental" life than Shakespeare.
What more exquisite creation of the poet's fancy, which might be every
word of it true, for in no particular does it surpass the truth, than that
of Ariel, whom the "foul witch Sycorax," "by help of
her more potent ministers, and in her most unmitigable rage," did
confine "into a cloven pine;" for Ariel, the good elemental, was
"a spirit too delicate to act her earthly and abhorred commands."
When Prospero, the Adept and White Magician, arrived upon the scene, by his
superior art he liberated the delicate Ariel, who afterwards becomes his
ministering servant for good, not for evil.
In the Midsummer
Night's Dream, Titania transports a human child into her elemental world,
where she keeps him with so jealous a love as to refuse to yield him even to
her "fairy lord," as Puck calls him. Puck himself is almost as
exquisite a realization of elemental life as Ariel. As Shakespeare unfolds the
lovely, innocent tale of the occupations, sports and pranks of this aerial
people, he introduces us to the elementals of his own beautiful thought world;
and, although indulging in the "sports of fancy," there is so broad a
foundation of truth, that, being enlightened by the revelations of Paracelsus,
we no longer think we are merely entertained by the poetical inventions of a
master of his art, but may well believe we have been witnesses of a charming
reality beheld through the "rift in the veil" of the poet's
unconscious inner sight. Indeed, one of the tenets of occult science is that
there is nothing on earth, nor that the mind of man can conceive, which is not
already existent in the unseen world.
We reflect in the
translucence, or diaphane of our mental world those concrete
images of things which we attract by the irresistible magnetism of desire working
through the thought. It is a spontaneous, unconscious mental process with us;
but there is no reason why it should not become a perfectly conscious process regulated
by a divine wisdom to functions of harmony with nature's laws, and to
productions of beauty and beneficence for the good of the whole world. As the
world is the concreted emanation of divine thought, so it is by thought that
man, the microcosm, creates upon his petty, finite plane.
Given the desire—even if it be only as the lightest breath of a summer zephyr upon
the sleeping bosom of the ocean, scarcely ruffling its surface—it becomes a
center of attraction for suitable molecules of thought-substance floating in
space, which immediately "agglomerate round the idea proceeding to reveal
itself," by means of clothing itself in substance. By
these silent processes in the invisible world wherein our souls draw the breath
of life, we form our mental world, our personal character, even our very
physical bodies. The perisprit, or astral body, the vehicle
for formless spirit, is essentially builded up from the mental
life, and grows by the accretion of those atoms or molecules of
thought-substance which are assimilable by the mind. Hence a good man, a man of
lofty aspirations, forms, as the nearest external clothing of
his inner spirit, a beautiful soul-body, which irradiates through and
beautifies the physical body. The man of low and groveling mind will, on the
contrary, attract the depraved and poisoned substances of the lower astral
world; the malarial emanations thrown off by other equally depraved beings, by
which his mind becomes embruted, his soul diseased, whilst his physical form
presents in a concrete image the ugliness of his inner nature. Such a man never
ascends above the dense, mephitic vapors of the sin-laden world, nor takes into
his soul the slightest breath of pure, vitalizing air. He is diseased by invisible
astral microbes, being most effectually self-inoculated with them
by the operation of desires which never transcend the earth. Did we lift the
veil which shrouds from mortal sight the elemental world of such a moral
pervert, we should behold a world teeming with hideous forms, and as actively
working as the bacteria of fermentation revealed by a powerful
microscope, elementals of destruction, death, and decay, which must pass out
into other forms for the purification of the spiritual atmosphere; creatures
produced by the man's own thoughts, living upon and in him, and reflecting,
like mirrors, his hideousness back again to himself. It is from the presence of
innumerable foci of evil of this kind that the world is befouled, and the moral
atmosphere of our planet tainted. They emit poisoned astral currents, from
which none are safe but those who are in the positive condition
of perfect moral health.
From the fountain of
life we draw in the materials of life, and become, upon our lower plane, other
living fountains, which from liberty of choice, and freedom of will, have the
power of so muddying the pure stream, that in its turbidness and foulness it
becomes death instead of life, and produces hell instead of heaven. When we, by
self-purification, and that constant mental discipline which trains us upwards,
clinging to our highest ideal by the tendrils of faith, and love, and continual
aspiration, as the vine would cling to a rock—have eliminated all that is
impure in our thought world, we become fountains of life, and make our own
heavens, wherein are reflected only images of divine beauty. The whole
elemental world on our immediate astral plane becomes gradually transformed
during the progress of our evolution into the higher spiritual grades of
being. And as humanity en masse advances, throwing off the
moral and spiritual deformity of the selfish, ignorant ego, the astral
atmospheres belonging to our planet world become filled with elementals of a
peaceful, loving character, of beautiful forms, and of beneficent influences.
The currents of evil force which now act with a continually jarring effect upon
those striving to maintain the equilibrium of harmony with nature upon the side
of good, would cease. That depression, agitation, and distress
which now, from inscrutable causes, assail minds otherwise rejoicing in an
innocent happiness, forewarning them of some impending calamity, or of some evil
presence it seems impossible to shake off, would become unknown. The horrible
demons of war, with which humanity, in its sinful state of separateness,
is continually threatening itself—as if the members of one body were
self-opposed, and revolting from that state of agreement that can alone ensure
the well-being of the whole—would no longer be held, like ravenous bloodhounds
chafing against their leashes, ready to spring, at a word, upon their hellish
work; but they will have passed away, like other hideous deformities of evil;
and the serene astral atmospheres would no longer reflect ideas of cruel wrongs
to fellow-beings, revenge, lust of power, injustice, and ruthless hatred. We
are taught that around an "idea" agglomerate the suitable molecules
of soul-substance—"Monads," as Leibnitz terms them, until a concrete
form stands created, the production of a mind, or minds. All the hideous
man-created beings, powers or forces, which now act like ravaging pestilences
and storms in the astral atmospheres of our planet will have disappeared
like the monstrous phantoms of a frightful dream, when the whole of humanity
has progressed into a state of higher spiritual evolution. It is well to
reflect that each individual, however humble and apparently insignificant
his position in the great human family, can aid by his life, by the silent
emanation of his pure and wise thoughts, as well as by his active labors for
humanity, in bringing nearer this halcyon period of peace, harmony, and
purity—that millennium, in short, we are all looking forward to, as a dream we
can never hope to see realized.
In Man:
Fragments of Forgotten History, we read: "Violence was the most
baneful manifestation of man's spiritual decadence, and it rebounded upon him
from the elemental beings, whom it was his duty to develop"—those sub-mundanes,
towards whom man is now learning that he incurs responsibilities of
which he is at present utterly unconscious, but of which he will indubitably
become more and more aware as he ascends the ladder of spiritual evolution.
To continue our extract
from Fragments. "When this duty was ignored, and the
separation of interests was accentuated, the natural man forcibly realized an
antagonism with the elemental spirits. As violence increased in man, these spirits
waxed strong in their way, and, true to their natures, which had been outraged
by the neglect of those who were in a sense their guardians, they automatically
responded with resentment. No longer could man rely upon the power of love or
harmony to guide others, because he himself had ceased to be impelled solely by
its influence; distrust had marred the symmetry of his inner self, and
beings who could not perceive but only receive impressions projected
towards them, quickly adapted themselves to the altered conditions."
(Elementals as forces, respond to forces, or are swayed by them;
man, as a superior force, acts upon them, therefore, injuriously, or
beneficially, and they in their turn, poisoned by his baleful influence, when
he is depraved, become injurious forces to him by the laws of reaction.)
"At once nature itself took on the changed expression; and where all
before was gladness and freshness there were now indications of sorrow and
decay. Atmospheric influences hitherto unrecognized began to be noted; there
was felt a chill in the morning, a dearth of magnetic heat at noon-tide, and a
universal deadness at the approach of night, which began to be looked upon with
alarm. For a change in the object must accompany every change in the subject.
Until this point was reached there was nothing to make man afraid of himself
and his surroundings.
"And as he plunged
deeper and deeper into matter, he lost his consciousness of the subtler forms
of existence, and attributed all the antagonism he experienced to unknown
causes. The conflict continued to wax stronger, and, in consequence of his
ignorance, man fell a readier victim. There were exceptions among the race
then, as there are now, whose finer perceptive faculties outgrew, or kept
ahead, of the advancing materialization; and they alone, in course of events,
could feel and recognize the influences of these earliest progeny of the earth.
"Time came when an
occasional appearance was viewed with alarm, and was thought to be an omen of
evil. Recognizing this fear on the part of man, the elementals ultimately came
to realize for him the dangers he apprehended, and they banded together to
terrify him." (They reflected back to him his own fears in a concrete
form, sufficiently intelligent, perhaps, to take some malicious pleasure in it,
for man in propelling into space a force of any kind is met by a reactionary
force, which seems to give exactly what his mind foreshadowed. In the negative
coldness of fear, he lays himself open to infesting molecules or atoms which
paralyze life, and he falls a victim to his own lack of faith, cheerful courage
and hope.) "They found strong allies in an order of existence which was
generated when physical death made its appearance" (i.e.,
elementaries, or shells); "and their combined forces began to manifest
themselves at night, for which man had a dread as being the enemy of his
protector, the sun.[19]
"The elementaries
galvanized into activity by the elemental beings began to appear to man under
as many varieties of shape as his hopes and fears allowed. And as his ignorance
of things spiritual became denser, these agencies brought in an influx of
error, which accelerated his spiritual degeneration. Thus, it will be seen that
man's neglect of his duty to the nature-spirits is the cause which has launched
him into a sea of troubles, that has shipwrecked so many generations of his
descendants. Famines, plagues, wars, and other catastrophes are not so
disconnected with the agency of nature-spirits as it might appear to the
sceptical mind."[20]
It is therefore evident
that the world of man exercises a controlling power over this invisible world
of elementals. Even in the most remote and inaccessible haunts of nature, where
we may imagine halcyon days of an innocent bliss elapsing in poetic peace and
beauty for the more harmless of these irresponsible, evanescent offspring of
nature's teeming bosom, they must inevitably, sooner or later, yield up their
peaceful sovereignty to the greater monarch, man, who usually comes with a
harsh and discordant influence, like the burning sirocco of the desert, like
the overwhelming avalanche from the silent peaks of snow, or the earthquake,
convulsing and tearing to atoms the beauty of gardens, palaces, cities. It is
said that elementals die; it is presumable that at such times they
die by myriads, when the whole surface of the earth becomes changed from the
unavoidable passing away of nature's wildernesses, the peaceful homes of bird
and beast, as the improving, commercial, money-grasping man—that contradiction
of God, that industrious destroyer, who lives at war with beauty, peace, and
goodness—appears upon the scene. These may be called poetical rhapsodies; yet
poetry is, in a mysterious way, closely allied to that hidden truth which has
its birth on the soul-plane, and the imagination of man is, according to
Eliphas Lévi, a clairvoyant and magical faculty—"the wand of the
magician."
To speak of
elementals dying, is to use a word which expresses for us change
of condition; the passing from one sphere of life to another, or from one
plane of consciousness to another. This to the sensual man is
"death." But there is no death—it is merely a
passing from one phase of existence to another. Hence the elementals lose the
forms they once held, changing their plane of consciousness, and appearing in other
forms.
We have shown somewhat
of the mysterious way in which man acts upon these invisible denizens of his
soul-world, and by which he incurs a certain responsibility. By the dynamic
power of thought and will it is done—as everything is done. The elementals
pushed by man, as by a superior force, off that equilibrium of harmony with
pure, innocent nature, which they originally maintained when our planet was
young, have been transformed into powers of evil, which man brings upon himself
as retribution—the reaction of that force he ignorantly sets in motion when he
breaks the beneficent laws of nature. Originally dependent upon him, and
capable of aiding him in a thousand ways when he is wise and good, they have
become his enemies, who thwart him at every turn, and guard the secrets of
their abodes with none the less implacable sternness because they are probably
only semi-conscious of the functions they perform. It is nature acting through
them—the great cosmic consciousness, which forbids that desecrating footsteps
shall invade the holy precincts of her stupendous life-secrets. But to the
spiritual man—the god—these secrets open of themselves, like a hand laden with
gifts, readily unclosing to a favorite and deserving child.
Giving forth a current
of evil, and sinking therefrom into a state of bestial ignorance, man has
enveloped himself in clouds of darkness which assume monstrous shapes
threatening to overwhelm him. A wicked man is generally a coward because he
lives in a state of perpetual dread of the reactionary effect of the evil
forces he has set in motion. These are volumes of elemental forms banded
together, and swaying like the thunder-clouds of a gathering storm.
To disperse these, his
own spiritual mind must ray forth the light reflected from the source of
light—omniscience. In the astral atmospheres of the spiritual man, there are no
clouds, and fear is unknown. In the mental world of the innocent and pure,
those are only forms of gracious beauty, as lovely as the shapes of nature's
innocent embryons, which reveal themselves in the forests, the running streams,
the floating breeze, and in company with the birds and flowers, to the
clairvoyant sight of those nature-lovers before whom she withdraws her veils,
communing with their souls by an intuitional speech which fills them with
rapturous admiration. It is not only the learned scientist who may read
nature's marvelous revelations; for she whispers them with maternal tenderness
into the open ears of babes, where they remain ever safe from desecration, and
are cherished as the soul's innocent delights in hours of isolation from the
busy, jarring world.
The spiritual soul is
ever looking beneath nature's material veils for correspondences.
Every natural object means something else to such penetrating
vision—a vision which begins to be spontaneously exercised by the soul when it
has fairly reached that stage of spiritual evolution; and to this silent
exploration many a secret meaning reveals itself by object-pictures, which
awaken reflection and inquiry as to the why and wherefore. Thus the
spiritual man drinks, as it were, from nature's own hand the pure waters of an
inexhaustible spring—that occult knowledge which feeds his soul, and aids in
forming for him a beautiful and powerful astral body. And nature becomes
invested to his penetrating sight with a beauty she never wore before, and
which the clay-blinded eyes of animal man can never behold. Such a man would
enter the isolated haunts of the purer nature-spirits with gentle footsteps,
and loving thoughts. To him the breeze is wafted wooingly, the streams whisper
music, and everything wears an aspect of loving joyousness, and inviting
confidence. Beside the rigid material forms, he sees their aromal
counter-parts; everything is life; the very stones live, and have a
consciousness suited to their state; and he feels as if every atom of his own
body vibrated in unison with the living things about him—as if all were
one flesh. To injure a single thing would be impossible to him. Such is the
soul-condition of the perfect man, to whom evil has become impossible.
An adept has
written—"Every thought of man upon being evolved passes into another world
and becomes an active entity by associating itself—coalescing, we might term
it—with an elemental; that is to say, with one of the semi-intelligent forces
of the kingdoms. It survives as an active intelligence—a creature of the mind's
begetting—for a longer or shorter period, proportionate with the original
intensity of the cerebral action which generated it. Thus, a good thought is
perpetuated as an active, beneficent power, an evil one as a maleficent demon.
And so man is continually peopling his current in space with the offspring of
his fancies, desires, impulses, and passions; a current which re-acts upon
any sensitive or nervous organization which comes in contact with it, in
proportion to its dynamic intensity. The adept evolves these shapes
consciously, other men throw them off unconsciously."
Therefore, man must be
held responsible not only for his outward actions, but his secret thoughts, by
which he puts into existence irresponsible entities of more or less maleficent
power, if his thoughts be of an evil nature. These are revelations of a deep
and abstruse character; but would they have come at all if man had not reached
that stage of evolution when it is necessary he should step up into his
spiritual kingdom, and rule as a master over his lower self, and as a
beneficent god over every department of unintelligent nature?
We note the closing
words of the adept's letter: "The adept evolves these shapes consciously,
other men throw them off unconsciously." In the adept's soul-world
then—the man who has ascended, by self-conquest primarily, into his spiritual
kingdom, and who has graduated through years of probation and study in
spiritual or occult science—i.e., the White Magician, the Son of God,
the inheritor by spiritual evolution, of divinity—there would reign peace,
happiness, beauty, order, absolute harmony with nature on the side of good. No
discordant note, no deformed astral production to embarrass or obstruct the
current of divine magnetism he emanates into space—the delicious,
soul-purifying, healing, and uplifting aura which radiates from him as from a
center of beneficence to the lower world of struggling humanity. The
semi-intelligent forces of nature, the innocent nature spirits would in such a soul-world,
find an appropriate and harmonious habitat, clustering in waiting obedience
upon the behests of a master whose every thought-breath would be as an
uplifting life.
To such a state and
condition of complete harmony with God and nature must the truly perfect
spiritual man ascend by evolution.
The Difference Between
Elementals and Elementaries
From the similarity of
the terms used to designate two classes of astral beings who are able to
communicate with man, a certain confusion has arisen in the public mind, which
it would be as well, perhaps, to aid in removing.
Elementals is a term applied to the nature spirits,
the living existences which belong peculiarly to the elements they inhabit;
"beings of the mysteria specialia," according to
Paracelsus, "soul-forms, which will return into their chaos, and who are
not capable of manifesting any higher spiritual activity because they do not
possess the necessary kind of constitution in which an activity of a spiritual
character can manifest itself.... Matter is connected with spirit by an
intermediate principle which it receives from this spirit. This intermediate
link between matter and spirit belongs to all the three kingdoms of nature. In
the mineral kingdom it is called Stannar, or Trughat; in the vegetable kingdom, Jaffas;
and it forms in connection with the vital force of the vegetable kingdom, the
Primum Ens, which possesses the highest medicinal properties.... In the animal
kingdom, this semi-material body is called Evestrum, and in human beings it is
called the Sidereal Man. Each living being is connected with the Macrocosmos
and Microcosmos by means of this intermediate element of soul, belonging to the
Mysterium Magnum from whence it has been received, and whose form and qualities
are determined by the quality and quantity of the spiritual and material
elements." From this we may infer that the Elementals,
properly speaking, are the Soul-forms of the elements they
inhabit—the activities and energies of the world-soul differentiated
into forms, endowed with more or less consciousness and capacities for feeling,
and hours of enjoyment, or pain. But these, never or rarely, entering any more
deeply into dense matter than enabled so to do by their aerial invisible
bodies, do not appear upon our gross physical plane otherwise than as forces,
energies, or influences. Their soul-forms are the intermediate link between
matter and spirit, resembling the soul-forms of animals and men, which also
form this intermediate link, the difference being that the souls of animals and
men have enveloped themselves in a casing of dense matter for the purposes of
existence upon the more external planes of life. Consequently, after the death
of the external bodies of men and animals, there remain astral remnants which
undergo gradual disintegration in the astral atmospheres. These have been
termed elementaries; i.e., "the astral corpses of
the dead; the ethereal counterpart of the once living person, which will sooner
or later be decomposed into its astral elements, as the physical body is
dissolved into the elements to which it belongs. The elementaries of good
people have little cohesion and evaporate soon; those of wicked people may
exist a long time; those of suicides, etc., have a life and consciousness of
their own as long as a division of principles has not taken place. These are
the most dangerous."
In the introduction
to Isis Unveiled, we find the following definition of elemental
spirits:
"The creatures
evolved in the four kingdoms of earth, air, fire, and water, and called by the
Kabalists gnomes, sylphs, salamanders, and undines. They may be termed the
forces of nature, and will either operate effects as the servile agents of
general law, or may be employed by the disembodied spirits—whether pure or
impure—and by living adepts of magic and sorcery, to produce desired phenomenal
results. Such beings never become men." (But there are
classes of elemental spirits who do become men, as we shall see further on.)
"Under the general
designation of fairies and fays, these spirits of the elements appear in the
myth, fable, tradition, and poetry of all nations, ancient and modern. Their
names are legion—peris, devs, djins, sylvans, satyrs, fawns, elves, dwarfs,
trolls, kobolds, brownies, stromkarls, undines, nixies, salamanders, goblins,
banshees, kelpies, prixies, moss people, good people, good neighbors, wild
women, men of peace, white ladies, and many more. They have been seen, feared,
blessed, banned, and invoked in every quarter of the globe and in every age.
These elementals are the principal agents of disembodied but never visible
spirits at séances, and the producers of all the phenomena except the
'subjective.'"—(Preface xxix, vol. I.)
"In the Jewish
Kabala the nature spirits were known under the general name of Shedim,
and divided into four classes. The Persians called them devs; the
Greeks indistinctly designated them as demons; the Egyptians knew
them as afrites. The ancient Mexicans, says Kaiser, believed in
numerous spirit-abodes, into one of which the shades of innocent children were
placed until final disposal; into another, situated in the sun, ascended the
valiant souls of heroes; while the hideous specters of incorrigible sinners
were sentenced to wander and despair in subterranean caves, held in the bonds
of the earth-atmosphere, unwilling and unable to liberate themselves. They
passed their time in communicating with mortals, and frightening those who
could see them. Some of the African tribes know them as Yowahoos."—(P.
313, vol. I.)
Of the ideas of Proclus
on this subject it is said in Isis Unveiled:
"He held that the
four elements are all filled with demons, maintaining with Aristotle that the
universe is full, and that there is no void in nature. The demons of earth,
air, fire, and water, are of an elastic, ethereal, semi-corporeal essence. It
is these classes which officiate as intermediate agents between the gods and
men. Although lower in intelligence than the sixth order of the higher demons,
these beings preside directly over the elements and organic life. They direct
the growth, the inflorescence, the properties, and various changes of plants.
They are the personified ideas or virtues shed from the heavenly ule into
the inorganic matter; and, as the vegetable kingdom is one remove higher
than the mineral, these emanations from the celestial gods take form in the
plant, and become its soul. It is that which Aristotle's doctrine
terms the form in the three principles of natural bodies,
classified by him as privation, matter, and form. His philosophy
teaches that besides the original matter, another principle is necessary to
complete the triune nature of every particle, and this is form; an
invisible, but still, in an ontological sense of the word, a substantial being,
really distinct from matter proper. Thus, in an animal or a plant, besides the
bones, the flesh, the nerves, the brains, and the blood in the former; and
besides the pulpy matter, tissues, fibers, and juice in the latter, which blood
and juice by circulating through the veins and fibers nourish all parts of both
animal and plant; and besides the animal spirits which are the principles of
motion, and the chemical energy which is transformed into vital force in the
green leaf, there must be a substantial form, which Aristotle called in the
horse, the horse's soul; and Proclus, the demon of
every mineral, plant, or animal, and the medieval philosophers, the elementary
spirits of the four kingdoms."—(P. 312, vol. I.)
"According to the
ancient doctrines, the soulless elemental spirits were evolved by the ceaseless
motion inherent in the astral light. Light is force, and the latter is produced
by will. As this will proceeds from an intelligence which cannot
err, for it has nothing of the material organs of human thought in it, being
the super-fine pure emanation of the highest divinity itself—(Plato's Father)—it
proceeds from the beginning of time, according to immutable laws, to
evolve the elementary fabric requisite for subsequent generations of what we
term human races. All of the latter, whether belonging to this planet or to
some other of the myriads in space, have their earthly bodies evolved in the
matrix out of the bodies of a certain class of these elemental beings which
have passed away in the invisible worlds." (P. 285, vol. I.)
Speaking of Pythagoras,
Iamblichus, and other Greek philosophers, Isis says:
"The universal
ether was not, in their eyes, simply a something stretching, tenantless,
throughout the expanse of heaven; it was a boundless ocean peopled, like our
familiar seas, with monstrous and minor creatures, and having in its every
molecule the germs of life. Like the finny tribes which swarm in our oceans and
smaller bodies of water, each kind having its 'habitat' in some spot to which
it is curiously adapted; some friendly and some inimical to man; some pleasant
and some frightful to behold; some seeking the refuge of quiet nooks and
land-locked harbors, and some traversing great areas of water, the various
races of the elemental spirits were believed by them to inhabit the different
portions of the great ethereal ocean, and to be exactly adapted to their
respective conditions." (P. 284, vol. I.)
"Lowest in the
scale of being are those invisible creatures called by the Kabalists the elementary.
There are three distinct classes of these. The highest, in intelligence and
cunning, are the so-called terrestrial spirits, the larvæ, or shadows
of those who have lived on earth, have refused all spiritual light, remained
and died deeply immersed in the mire of matter, and from whose sinful
souls the immortal spirit has gradually separated. The second class is composed
of invisible antitypes of men to be born. No form can come
into objective existence, from the highest to the lowest, before the abstract
idea of this form, or as Aristotle would call it, the privation of this form is
called forth.... These models, as yet devoid of immortal spirits, are
elementals properly speaking, psychic embryos—which when their time
arrives, die out of the invisible world, and are borne into this visible one as
human infants, receiving in transitu that divine breath called
spirit which completes the perfect man. This class cannot communicate
objectively with man.
"The third class of
elementals proper never evolve into human beings, but occupy, as it were, a
specific step of the ladder of being, and, by comparison with the others, may
properly be called nature-spirits, or cosmic agents of nature, each being
confined to its own element, and never transgressing the bounds of others.
These are what Tertullian called 'the princes of the powers of the air.'
"This class is
believed to possess but one of the three attributes of man. They have neither
immortal souls nor tangible bodies; only astral forms, which partake, in a
distinguishing degree, of the element to which they belong, and also of the
ether. They are a combination of sublimated matter and a rudimental mind. Some
are changeless, but still have no separate individuality, acting collectively
so to say. Others, of certain elements and species, change form under a fixed
law which Kabalists explain. The most solid of their bodies is ordinarily just
immaterial enough to escape perception by our physical eyesight, but not
so unsubstantial but that they can be perfectly recognized by the inner or
clairvoyant vision. They not only exist, and can all live in ether, but can
handle and direct it for the production of physical effects, as readily as we
can compress air or water for the same purpose by pneumatic or hydraulic
apparatus; in which occupation they are readily helped by the 'human
elementary.' More than this; they can so condense it as to make to themselves
tangible bodies, which by their protean powers they can cause to assume such
likenesses as they choose, by taking as their models the portraits they find
stamped in the memory of the persons present. It is not necessary that the
sitter should be thinking at the moment of the one represented. His image may
have faded away years before. The mind receives indelible impression even from
chance acquaintance, or persons encountered but once." (Pp. 310, 311, vol.
I.)
"If spiritualists
are anxious to keep strictly dogmatic in their notions of the spirit-world,
they must not set scientists to investigate their phenomena in
the true experimental spirit. The attempt would most surely result in a partial
re-discovery of the magic of old—that of Moses and Paracelsus. Under the
deceptive beauty of some of their apparitions, they might find some day the
sylphs and fair undines of the Rosicrucians playing in the currents of psychic and odic force.
"Already Mr.
Crookes, who fully credits the being, feels that under the fair
skin of Katie, covering a simulacrum of heart borrowed partially from the
medium and the circle, there is no soul! And the learned authors of the Unseen
Universe, abandoning their "electro-biological" theory,
begin to perceive in the universal ether the possibility that
it is a photographic album of En-Soph the Boundless.—(P. 67,
vol. I.)
"We are far from
believing that all the spirits that communicate at circles are of the classes
called 'elemental' and 'elementary.'" Many, especially among those who
control the medium subjectively to speak, write, and otherwise act in various
ways, are human, disembodied spirits. Whether the majority of such spirits are
good or bad, largely depends on the private morality of the medium,
much on the circle present, and a great deal on the intensity and object of
their purpose.... But in any case, human spirits can never materialize
themselves in propriâ personâ.[21]—(P.
67, vol. I.)
In Art Magic we
find the following pertinent remarks, p. 322. "There are some features of
mediumship, especially amongst those persons known as physical force
mediums, which long since should have awakened the attention of
philosophical spiritualists to the fact that there were influences kindred only
with animal natures at work somewhere, and unless the agency of certain classes
of elemental spirits was admitted into the category of occasional control,
humanity has at times assumed darker shades than we should be willing to assign
to it. Unfortunately in discussing these subjects, there are many barriers
to the attainment of truth on this subject. Courtesy and compassion alike
protest against pointing to illustrations in our own time, whilst prejudice and
ignorance intervene to stifle inquiry respecting phenomena, which a long lapse
of time has left us free to investigate.
"The judges whose
ignorance and superstition disgraced the witchcraft trials of the sixteenth and
seventeenth centuries, found a solvent for all occult, or even suspicious
circumstances, in the control of 'Satan and his imps.' The modern
spiritualists, with few exceptions, are equally stubborn in attributing
everything that transpires in spiritualistic circles, even to the wilful cunningly
contrived preparations for deception on the part of pretended media,
to the influence of disembodied human spirits—good, bad, or indifferent; but
the author's own experience, confirmed by the assurances of wise-teaching
spirits, impels him to assert that the tendencies to exhibit animal
proclivities, whether mental, passional, or phenomenal, are most generally
produced by elementals.
"The rapport with
this realm of beings is generally due to certain proclivities in the individual;
or, when whole communities are affected, the cause proceeds from revolutionary
movements in the realms of astral fluid; these continually affect the
elementals, who, in combination with low undeveloped spirits of humanity
(elementaries), avail themselves of magnetic epidemics to obsess susceptible
individuals, and sympathetically affect communities."
In the introduction
to Isis Unveiled, we find the following definition of elementary
spirits:
"Properly, the
disembodied souls of the depraved; these souls, having at some
time prior to death, separated from themselves their divine spirits, and so
lost their chance of immortality. Eliphas Lévi and some other Kabalists make
little distinction between elementary spirits, who have been men, and those beings
which people the elements and are the blind forces of nature. Once divorced
from their bodies, these souls (also called astral bodies) of purely
materialistic persons, are irresistibly attracted to the earth, where they live
a temporary and finite life amid elements congenial to their gross natures.
From having never, during their natural lives, cultivated this spirituality,
but subordinated it to the material and gross, they are now unfitted for the
lofty career of the pure, disembodied being, for whom the atmosphere of earth
is stifling and mephitic, and whose attractions are all away from it. After a
more or less prolonged period of time these material souls will begin to
disintegrate, and finally, like a column of mist, be dissolved, atom by atom, in
the surrounding elements.—(Preface xxx., vol. I.)
"After the death of
the depraved and the wicked, arrives the critical moment. If during life the
ultimate and desperate effort of the inner-self to reunite itself with the
faintly-glimmering ray of its divine parent is neglected; if this ray is
allowed to be more and more shut out by the thickening crust of matter, the
soul, once freed from the body, follows its earthly attractions, and is
magnetically drawn into and held within the dense fogs of the material
atmosphere. Then it begins to sink lower and lower, until it finds itself, when
returned to consciousness, in what the ancients termed Hades. The
annihilation of such a soul is never instantaneous; it may last centuries
perhaps; for nature never proceeds by jumps and starts, and the astral soul,
being formed of elements, the law of evolution must bide its time. Then begins
the fearful law of compensation, the Yin-Youan of the
Buddhists. This class of spirits is called the terrestrial, or earthly elementary,
in contradistinction to the other classes." (They frequent séance rooms,
&c.)—(P. 319, vol. I.)
Of the danger of
meddling in occult matters before understanding the elementals and
elementaries, Isis says, in the case of a rash intruder:
"The spirit of
harmony and union will depart from the elements, disturbed by the imprudent
hand; and the currents of blind forces will become immediately infested by
numberless creatures of matter and instinct—the bad demons of the theurgists,
the devils of theology; the gnomes, salamanders, sylphs, and undines will
assail the rash performer under multifarious aerial forms. Unable to invent
anything, they will search your memory to its very depths; hence the nervous
exhaustion and mental oppression of certain sensitive natures at spiritual
circles. The elementals will bring to light long-forgotten remembrances of the
past; forms, images, sweet mementos, and familiar sentences, long since faded
from our own remembrance, but vividly preserved in the inscrutable depths of
our memory and on the astral tablets of the imperishable 'Book of
Life.'"—(P. 343, vol. I.)
Paracelsus speaks
of Xeni Nephidei: "Elemental spirits that give men occult
powers over visible matter, and then feed on their brains, often causing
thereby insanity.
"Man rules
potentially over all lower existences than himself," says the author
of Art Magic (p. 333), "but woe to him, who by seeking
aid, counsel, or assistance, from lower grades of being, binds himself to them;
henceforth he may rest assured they will become his parasites and associates,
and as their instincts—like those of the animal kingdom—are strong in the
particular direction of their nature, they are powerful to disturb, annoy,
prompt to evil, and avail themselves of the contact induced by man's invitation
to drag him down to their own level. The legendary idea of evil compacts
between man and the 'Adversary' is not wholly mythical. Every wrong-doer signs
that compact with spirits who have sympathy with his evil actions.
"Except for the
purposes of scientific investigation, or with a view to strengthening ourselves
against the silent and mysterious promptings to evil that beset us on every
side, we warn mere curiosity-seekers, or persons ambitious to attach the
legions of an unknown world to their service, against any attempts to seek
communion with elemental spirits, or beings of any grade lower than man. Beings
below mortality can grant nothing that mortality ought to ask. They
can only serve man in some embryonic department of nature, and man must stoop
to their state before they can thus reach him.... Knowledge is only good for us
when we can apply it judiciously. Those who investigate for the sake of
science, or with a view to enlarging the narrow boundaries of man's egotistical
opinions, may venture much further into the realms of the unknown than
curiosity-seekers, or persons who desire to apply the secrets of being to
selfish purposes. It may be as well also for man to remember that he and his
planet are not the all of being, and that, besides the
revelations included in the stupendous outpouring called 'Modern Spiritualism,'
there are many problems yet to be solved in human life and planetary
existences, which spiritualism does not cover, nor ignorance and prejudice dream
of.... Besides these considerations, we would warn man of the many subtle,
though invisible, enemies which surround him, and, rather by the instinct of
their embryonic natures than through malice prepense, seek to lay
siege to the garrison of the human heart. We would advise him, moreover, that
into that sacred entrenchment no power can enter, save by invitation of the
soul itself. Angels may solicit, or demons may tempt, but none can compel the
spirit within to action, unless it first surrenders the will to
the investing power."—(Art Magic, p. 335.)
From the Theosophist of
July 1886, we make the following extract, bearing upon the subject of the loss
of immortality by soul-death, and the dangers of Black Magic:
"It is necessary to
say a few words as regards the real nature of soul-death, and the ultimate fate
of a black magician. The soul, as we have explained above, is an isolated drop
in the ocean of cosmic life. This current of cosmic life is but the light and
the aura of the Logos. Besides the Logos, there are innumerable other
existences, both spiritual and astral, partaking of this life and living in it.
These beings have special affinities with particular emotions of the human
soul, and particular characteristics of the human mind. They have, of course, a
definite individual existence of their own, which lasts up to the end of the
Manwantara. There are three ways in which a soul may cease to retain its
special individuality. Separated from its Logos, which is, as it were, its
source, it may not acquire a strong and abiding individuality of its own, and
may in course of time be reabsorbed into the current of universal life. This is
real soul-death. It may also place itself en rapport with a
spiritual or elemental existence by evoking it, and concentrating its attention
and regard upon it for purposes of black magic and Tantric worship. In such a
case it transfers its individuality to such existence and is sucked up into it,
as it were. In such a case the black magician lives in such a being, and as
such a being he continues until the end of Manwantara."
A good deal of highly
interesting information on the subject of elementals and elementaries is to be
found in numbers of The Path. A few of the points contained in
these articles may be mentioned here, but the reader is strongly recommended to
study these articles, entitled Conversations on Occultism, for
himself. According to the writer:
An elemental is a center
of force, without intelligence, as we understand the word, without moral
character or tendencies similar to ours, but capable of being directed in its
movements by human thoughts, which may, consciously or not, give it any form,
and endow it to a certain extent with what we call intelligence. We give them
form by a species of thought which the mind does not register—involuntary and
unconscious thought—"as, one person might shape an elemental so as to seem
like an insect, and not be able to tell whether he had thought of such a thing
or not." The elemental world interpenetrates this one, and elementals are
constantly being attracted to, or repelled from, human beings, taking the
prevailing color of their thoughts. Time and space, as we understand them, do
not exist for elementals. They can be seen clairvoyantly in the shapes they
assume under different influences, and they do many of the phenomena of the
séance room. Light and the concentrated attention of any one make a disturbance
in the magnetism of a room, interfering with their work in that respect. At
séances elementaries also are present; these are shells, or half-dead human
beings. The elementaries are not all bad, however, but the worst are the
strongest, because the most attracted to material life. They are all helped and
galvanized into action by elementals.
Contact with these beings
has a deteriorating effect in all cases. Clairvoyants see in the astral light
surrounding a person the images of people or events that have made an
impression on that person's mind, and they frequently mistake these echoes and
reflections for astral realities; only the trained seer can distinguish. The
whole astral world is full of illusions.
Elementals have not
got being such as mortals have. There are different classes
for the different planes of nature. Each class is confined to its own plane,
and many can never be recognized by men. The elemental world is a strong factor
in Karma. Formerly, when men were less selfish and more spiritual, the
elementals were friendly. They have become unfriendly by reason of man's
indifference to, and want of sympathy with the rest of creation. Man has also
colored the astral world with his own selfish and brutal thoughts, and produced
an atmosphere of evil which he himself breathes. When men shall cultivate
feelings of brotherly affection for each other, and of sympathy with nature,
the elementals will change their present hostile attitude for one of
helpfulness.
Elementals aid in the
performance of phenomena produced by adepts. They also enter the sphere of
unprotected persons, and especially of those who study occultism, thus
precipitating the results of past Karma.
The adepts are reluctant
to speak of elementals for two reasons. Because it is useless, as people could
not understand the subject in their present state of intellectual and spiritual
development; and because, if any knowledge of them were given, some persons
might be able to come into contact with them to their own detriment and that of
the world. In the present state of universal selfishness and self-seeking, the
elementals would be employed to work evil, as they are in themselves colorless,
taking their character from those who employ them. The adepts, therefore, keep
back or hide the knowledge of these beings from men of science, and from the
world in general. By-and-by, however, material science will rediscover black
magic, and then will come a war between the good and evil powers, and the evil
powers will be overcome, as always happens in such cases. Eventually all about
the elementals will be known to men—when they have developed intellectually, morally,
and spiritually sufficiently to have that knowledge without danger.
Elementals guard hidden
treasures; they obey the adepts, however, who could command the use of untold
wealth if they cared to draw upon these hidden deposits.
N. B.—Nizida has quoted
from Man: Fragments of Forgotten History. The S. P. S. desires to
say that while some of the statements contained in that work are correct, there
is also in it a large admixture of error. Therefore, the S. P. S. does not
recommend this work to the attention of students who have not yet learned
enough to be able to separate the grain from the husk. The same may be said
of Art-Magic.
By
Mme. Helena Blavatsky
Our kind host Sham Rao
was very gay during the remaining hours of our visit. He did his best to
entertain us, and would not hear of our leaving the neighborhood without having
seen its greatest celebrity, its most interesting sight. A jadu wâlâ—sorceress—well
known in the district, was just at this time under the influence of seven
sister-goddesses, who took possession of her by turns, and spoke their oracles
through her lips. Sham Rao said we must not fail to see her, be it only in the
interests of science.
The evening closes in,
and we once more get ready for an excursion. It is only five miles to the
cavern of the Pythia of Hindostan; the road runs through a jungle, but it is
level and smooth. Besides, the jungle and its ferocious inhabitants have ceased
to frighten us. The timid elephants we had in the "dead city" are
sent home, and we are to mount new behemoths belonging to a neighboring Râjâ.
The pair that stand before the verandah like two dark hillocks are steady and
trustworthy. Many a time these two have hunted the royal tiger, and no wild
shrieking or thunderous roaring can frighten them. And so, let us start! The
ruddy flames of the torches dazzle our eyes and increase the forest gloom.
Our surroundings seem so dark, so mysterious. There is something indescribably
fascinating, almost solemn, in these night-journeys in the out-of-the-way
corners of India. Everything is silent and deserted around you, everything is
dozing on the earth and overhead. Only the heavy, regular tread of the
elephants breaks the stillness of the night, like the sound of falling hammers
in the underground smithy of Vulcan. From time to time uncanny voices and
murmurs are heard in the black forest.
"The wind sings its
strange song amongst the ruins," says one of us, "what a wonderful
acoustic phenomenon!"
"Bhûta,
bhûta!" whisper the awestruck torch-bearers. They brandish their torches
and swiftly spin on one leg, and snap their fingers to chase away the
aggressive spirits.
The plaintive murmur is
lost in the distance. The forest is once more filled with the cadences of its
invisible nocturnal life—the metallic whirr of the crickets, the feeble,
monotonous croak of the tree-frog, the rustle of the leaves. From time to time
all this suddenly stops short and then begins again, gradually increasing and
increasing.
Heavens! What teeming
life, what stores of vital energy are hidden under the smallest leaf, the most
imperceptible blades of grass, in this tropical forest! Myriads of stars shine
in the dark blue of the sky, and myriads of fireflies twinkle at us from every
bush, moving sparks, like a pale reflection of the far-away stars.
000
We left the thick forest
behind us, and reached a deep glen, on three sides bordered with the thick
forest, where even by day the shadows are as dark as by night. We were about
two thousand feet above the foot of the Vindhya ridge, judging by the ruined
wall of Mandu, straight above our heads.
Suddenly a very chilly
wind rose that nearly blew our torches out. Caught in the labyrinth of bushes
and rocks, the wind angrily shook the branches of the blossoming syringas,
then, shaking itself free, it turned back along the glen and flew down the
valley, howling, whistling and shrieking, as if all the fiends of the forest
together were joining in a funeral song.
"Here we are,"
said Sham Rao, dismounting. "Here is the village; the elephants cannot go
any further."
"The village?
Surely you are mistaken. I don't see anything but trees."
"It is too dark to
see the village. Besides, the huts are so small, and so hidden by the bushes,
that even by daytime you could hardly find them. And there is no light in the
houses, for fear of the spirits."
"And where is your
witch? Do you mean we are to watch her performance in complete darkness?"
Sham Rao cast a furtive,
timid look round him; and his voice, when he answered our questions, was
somewhat tremulous.
"I implore you not
to call her a witch! She may hear you.... It is not far off, it is not more
than half a mile. Do not allow this short distance to shake your decision. No
elephant, and not even a horse, could make its way there. We must walk.... But
we shall find plenty of light there...."
This was unexpected, and
far from agreeable. To walk in this gloomy Indian night; to scramble through
thickets of cactuses; to venture in a dark forest, full of wild animals—this
was too much for Miss X—. She declared that she would go no further. She would
wait for us in the howdah on the elephant's back, and perhaps would go to
sleep.
Narayan was against
this parti de plaisir from the very beginning, and now,
without explaining his reasons, he said she was the only sensible one among us.
"You won't lose
anything," he remarked, "by staying where you are. And I only wish
every one would follow your example."
"What ground have
you for saying so, I wonder?" remonstrated Sham Rao, and a slight note of
disappointment rang in his voice, when he saw that the excursion, proposed and
organized by himself, threatened to come to nothing. "What harm could be
done by it? I won't insist any more that the 'incarnation of gods' is a rare sight,
and that the Europeans hardly ever have an opportunity of witnessing it; but,
besides, the Kangalim in question is no ordinary woman. She leads a holy life;
she is a prophetess, and her blessing could not prove harmful to any one. I
insisted on this excursion out of pure patriotism."
"Sahib, if your
patriotism consists in displaying before foreigners the worst of our plagues,
then why did you not order all the lepers of your district to assemble and
parade before the eyes of our guests? You are a patèl, you have the
power to do it."
How bitterly Narayan's
voice sounded to our unaccustomed ears. Usually he was so even-tempered, so indifferent
to everything belonging to the exterior world.
Fearing a quarrel
between the Hindus, the colonel remarked, in a conciliatory tone, that it was
too late for us to reconsider our expedition. Besides, without being a believer
in the "incarnation of gods," he was personally firmly convinced that
demoniacs existed even in the West. He was eager to study every psychological
phenomenon, wherever he met with it, and whatever shape it might assume.
It would have been a
striking sight for our European and American friends if they had beheld our
procession on that dark night. Our way lay along a narrow winding path up the
mountain. Not more than two people could walk together—and we were thirty,
including the torch-bearers. Surely some reminiscence of night sallies against
the Confederate Southerners had revived in the colonel's breast, judging by the
readiness with which he took upon himself the leadership of our small
expedition. He ordered all the rifles and revolvers to be loaded, despatched
three torch-bearers to march ahead of us, and arranged us in pairs. Under such
a skilled chieftain we had nothing to fear from tigers; and so our procession
started, and slowly crawled up the winding path.
It cannot be said that
the inquisitive travelers, who appeared later on, in the den of the prophetess
of Mandu, shone through the freshness and elegance of their costumes. My gown,
as well as the traveling suits of the colonel and of Mr. Y— were nearly torn to
pieces. The cactuses gathered from us whatever tribute they could, and the
Babu's disheveled hair swarmed with a whole colony of grasshoppers and
fireflies, which probably, were attracted thither by the smell of cocoanut
oil. The stout Sham Rao panted like a steam engine. Narayan alone was like his
usual self—that is to say, like a bronze Hercules, armed with a club. At the
last abrupt turn of the path, after having surmounted the difficulty of
climbing over huge, scattered stones, we suddenly found ourselves on a
perfectly smooth place; our eyes, in spite of our many torches, were dazzled
with light, and our ears were struck by a medley of unusual sounds.
A new glen opened before
us, the entrance of which, from the valley, was well masked by thick trees. We
understood how easily we might have wandered round it, without ever suspecting
its existence. At the bottom of the glen we discovered the abode of the
celebrated Kangalim.
The den, as it turned
out, was situated in the ruin of an old Hindu temple in tolerably good
preservation. In all probability it was built long before the "Dead
City," because during the epoch of the latter, the heathen were not
allowed to have their own places of worship; and the temple stood quite close
to the wall of the town, in fact, right under it. The cupolas of the two
smaller lateral pagodas had fallen long ago, and huge bushes grew out of their
altars. This evening their branches were hidden under a mass of bright-colored
rags, bits of ribbon, little pots, and various other talismans, because, even
in them, popular superstition sees something sacred.
"And are not these
poor people right? Did not these bushes grow on sacred ground? Is not their sap
impregnated with the incense of offerings, and the exhalations of holy
anchorites, who once lived and breathed here?"
The learned but
superstitious Sham Rao would only answer our questions by new questions.
But the central temple,
built of red granite, stood unharmed by time, and, as we learned afterwards, a
deep tunnel opened just behind its closely-shut door. What was beyond it no one
knew. Sham Rao assured us that no man of the last three generations had ever
stepped over the threshold of this thick iron door; no one had seen the
subterranean passage for many years. Kangalim lived there in perfect isolation,
and, according to the oldest people in the neighborhood, she had always lived
there. Some people said she was three hundred years old; others alleged that a
certain old man on his death-bed had revealed to his son that this old woman
was no one else than his own uncle. This fabulous uncle had settled
in the cave in the times when the "Dead City" still counted several
hundreds of inhabitants. The hermit, busy paving his road to Moksha, had no
intercourse with the rest of the world, and nobody knew how he lived and what
he ate. But a good while ago, in the days when the Bellati (foreigners) had not
yet taken possession of this mountain, the old hermit suddenly was transformed
into a hermitess. She continues his pursuits and speaks with his voice, and
often in his name; but she receives worshippers, which was not the practice of
her predecessor.
We had come too early,
and the Pythia did not at first appear. But the square before the temple was
full of people, and a wild though picturesque scene it was. An enormous bonfire
blazed in the center, and round it crowded the naked savages like so many
black gnomes, adding whole branches of trees sacred to the seven
sister-goddesses. Slowly and evenly they all jumped from one leg to another to
a tune of a single monotonous musical phrase, which they repeated in chorus,
accompanied by several local drums and tambourines. The hushed trill of the
latter mingled with the forest echoes and the hysterical moans of two little
girls, who lay under a heap of leaves by the fire. The poor children were
brought here by their mothers, in the hope that the goddesses would take pity
upon them and banish the two evil spirits under whose obsession they were. Both
mothers were quite young, and sat on their heels blankly and sadly staring at
the flames. No one paid us the slightest attention when we appeared, and
afterwards during all our stay these people acted as if we were invisible. Had
we worn a cap of darkness they could not have behaved more strangely.
"They feel the
approach of the gods! The atmosphere is full of their sacred emanations!"
mysteriously explained Sham Rao, contemplating with reverence the natives, whom
his beloved Haeckel might have easily mistaken for his "missing
link," the brood of his Bathybius Haeckelii.
"They are simply
under the influence of toddy and opium!" retorted the irreverent Babu.
The lookers-on moved as
in a dream, as if they all were only half-awakened somnambulists, but the
actors were simply victims of St. Vitus's dance. One of them, a tall old man, a
mere skeleton with a long white beard, left the ring and begun whirling
vertiginously, with his arms spread like wings, and loudly grinding his long, wolf-like
teeth. He was painful and disgusting to look at. He soon fell down, and was
carelessly, almost mechanically pushed aside by the feet of the others still
engaged in their demoniac performance.
All this was frightful
enough, but many more horrors were in store for us.
Waiting for the
appearance of the prima donna of this forest opera company, we
sat down on the trunk of a fallen tree, ready to ask innumerable questions of
our condescending host. But I was hardly seated when a feeling of indescribable
astonishment and horror made me shrink back.
I beheld the skull of a
monstrous animal, the like of which I could not find in my zoölogical
reminiscences.
This head was much
larger than the head of an elephant skeleton. And still it could not be
anything but an elephant, judging by the skilfully restored trunk, which wound
down to my feet like a gigantic black leech. But an elephant has no horns,
whereas this one had four of them! The front pair stuck from the flat forehead
slightly bending forward and then spreading out; and the others had a wide
base, like the root of a deer's horn, that gradually decreased almost up to the
middle, and bore long branches enough to decorate a dozen ordinary elks. Pieces
of the transparent amber-yellow rhinoceros skin were strained over the empty
eye-holes of the skull, and small lamps burning behind them only added to the
horror, the devilish appearance of this head.
"What can this
be?" was our unanimous question. None of us had ever met anything like it,
and even the colonel looked aghast.
"It is a
Sivatherium," said Narayan. "Is it possible you never came
across these fossils in European museums? Their remains are common enough in
the Himalayas, though, of course, in fragments. They were called after
Shiva."
"If the collector
of this district ever hears that this antediluvian relic adorns the den of
your—ahem!—witch," remarked the Babu, "it won't adorn it many days
longer."
All around the skull and
on the floor of the portico there were heaps of white flowers, which, though
not quite antediluvian, were totally unknown to us. They were as large as a big
rose, and their white petals were covered with a red powder, the inevitable
concomitant of every Indian religious ceremony. Further on there were groups of
cocoanuts, and large brass dishes filled with rice, each adorned with a red or
green taper. In the center of the portico there stood a queer-shaped censer,
surrounded with chandeliers. A little boy, dressed from head to foot in white,
threw into it handfuls of aromatic powders.
"These people, who
assemble here to worship Kangalim," said Sham Rao, "do not actually
belong either to her sect or to any other. They are devil-worshippers. They do
not believe in Hindu gods; they live in small communities; they belong to one
of the many Indian races which usually are called the hill-tribes. Unlike the
Shanars of Southern Travancore, they do not use the blood of sacrificial
animals; they do not build separate temples to their bhutas. But they are
possessed by the strange fancy that the goddess Kâli, the wife of Shiva, from
time immemorial has had a grudge against them, and sends her favorite evil
spirits to torture them. Save this little difference, they have the same
beliefs as the Shanars. God does not exist for them; and even Shiva is
considered by them as an ordinary spirit. Their chief worship is offered to the
souls of the dead. These souls, however righteous and kind they may be in their
lifetime, become after death as wicked as can be; they are happy only when they
are torturing living men and cattle. As the opportunities of doing so are the
only reward for the virtues they possessed when incarnated, a very wicked man
is punished by becoming after his death a very soft-hearted ghost; he loathes
his loss of daring, and is altogether miserable. The results of this strange
logic are not bad, nevertheless. These savages and devil-worshippers are the
kindest and the most truth-loving of all the hill-tribes. They do whatever they
can to be worthy of their ultimate reward; because, don't you see, they all
long to become the wickedest of devils!"
And put in good humor by
his own wittiness, Sham Rao laughed till his hilarity became offensive,
considering the sacredness of the place.
"A year ago some
business matters sent me to Tinevelli," continued he. "Staying with a
friend of mine, who is a Shanar, I was allowed to be present at one of the
ceremonies in the honor of devils. No European has as yet witnessed this
worship, whatever the missionaries may say; but there are many converts amongst
the Shanars, who willingly describe them to the padres. My friend
is a wealthy man, which is probably the reason why the devils are especially
vicious to him. They poison his cattle, spoil his crops and his coffee plants,
and persecute his numerous relations, sending them sunstrokes, madness and
epilepsy, over which illnesses they especially preside. These wicked demons
have settled in every corner of his spacious landed property—in the woods, the
ruins, and even in his stables. To avert all this, my friend covered his land
with stucco pyramids, and prayed humbly, asking the demons to draw their
portraits on each of them, so that he may recognize them and worship each of
them separately, as the rightful owner of this, or that, particular pyramid.
And what do you think?... Next morning all the pyramids were found covered with
drawings. Each of them bore an incredibly good likeness of the dead of the
neighborhood. My friend had known personally almost all of them. He found also
a portrait of his own late father amongst the lot."
"Well? And was he
satisfied?"
"Oh, he was very
glad, very satisfied. It enabled him to choose the right thing to gratify the
personal tastes of each demon, don't you see? He was not vexed at finding his
father's portrait. His father was somewhat irascible; once he nearly broke both
his son's legs, administering to him fatherly punishment with an iron bar, so
that he could not possibly be very dangerous after his death. But another portrait,
found on the best and the prettiest of the pyramids, amazed my friend a good
deal, and put him in a blue funk. The whole district recognized an English
officer, a certain Captain Pole, who in his lifetime was as kind a gentleman as
ever lived."
"Indeed? But do you
mean to say that this strange people worshipped Captain Pole also?"
"Of course they
did! Captain Pole was such a worthy man, such an honest officer, that,
after his death, he could not help being promoted to the highest rank of Shanar
devils. The Pe-Kovil, demon's-house, sacred to his memory, stands side by side
with the Pe-Kovil Bhadrakâlî, which was recently conferred on the wife of a
certain German missionary, who also was a most charitable lady and so is very
dangerous now."
"But what are their
ceremonies? Tell us something about their rites."
"Their rites
consist chiefly of dancing, singing, and killing sacrificial animals. The
Shanars have no castes, and eat all kinds of meat. The crowd assembles about
the Pe-Kovil, previously designated by the priest; there is a general beating
of drums, and slaughtering of fowls, sheep and goats. When Captain Pole's turn
came an ox was killed, as a thoughtful attention to the peculiar tastes of his
nation. The priest appeared, covered with bangles, and holding a wand on which
tinkled numberless little bells, and wearing garlands of red and white flowers
round his neck, and a black mantle, on which were embroidered the ugliest
fiends you can imagine. Horns were blown and drums rolled incessantly. And oh,
I forgot to tell you there was also a kind of fiddle, the secret of which is
known only to the Shanar priesthood. Its bow is ordinary enough, made of
bamboo; but it is whispered that the strings are human veins.... When Captain
Pole took possession of the priest's body, the priest leaped high in the air,
and then rushed on the ox and killed him. He drank off the hot blood, and then
began his dance. But what a fright he was when dancing! You know, I am not
superstitious.... Am I?..."
Sham Rao looked at us
inquiringly, and I, for one, was glad at this moment that Miss X— was half a
mile off, asleep in the howdah.
"He turned, and
turned, as if possessed by all the demons of Nâraka. The enraged crowd hooted
and howled when the priest begun to inflict deep wounds all over his body with
the bloody sacrificial knife. To see him, with his hair waving in the wind and
his mouth covered with foam; to see him bathing in the blood of the sacrificed
animal, mixing it with his own, was more than I could bear. I felt as if
hallucinated, I fancied I also was spinning round...."
Sham Rao stopped
abruptly, struck dumb. Kangalim stood before us!
Her appearance was so
unexpected that we all felt embarrassed. Carried away by Sham Rao's
description, we had noticed neither how nor whence she came. Had she appeared
from beneath the earth we could not have been more astonished. Narayan stared
at her, opening wide his big jet-black eyes; the Babu clicked his tongue in
utter confusion.
Imagine a skeleton seven
feet high, covered with brown leather, with a dead child's tiny head stuck on
its bony shoulders; the eyes set so deep and at the same time flashing such
fiendish flames all through your body that you begin to feel your brain stop
working, your thoughts become entangled and your blood freeze in your veins.
I describe my personal
impressions, and no words of mine can do them justice. My description is too
weak. Mr. Y— and the colonel both grew pale under her stare and Mr. Y—
made a movement as if about to rise.
Needless to say that
such an impression could not last. As soon as the witch had turned her gleaming
eyes to the kneeling crowd, it vanished as swiftly as it had come. But still
all our attention was fixed on this remarkable creature.
Three hundred years old!
Who can tell? Judging by her appearance, we might as well conjecture her to be
a thousand. We beheld a genuine living mummy, or rather a mummy endowed with
motion. She seemed to have been withering since the creation. Neither time, nor
the ills of life, nor the elements could ever affect this living statue of
death. The all-destroying hand of time had touched her and stopped short. Time
could do no more, and so had left her. And with all this, not a single gray
hair. Her long black locks shone with a greenish sheen, and fell in heavy
masses down to her knees.
To my great shame, I
must confess that a disgusting reminiscence flashed into my memory. I thought
about the hair and the nails of corpses growing in the graves, and tried to
examine the nails of the old woman.
Meanwhile, she stood
motionless as if suddenly transformed into an ugly idol. In one hand she held a
dish with a piece of burning camphor, in the other a handful of rice, and she
never removed her burning eyes from the crowd. The pale yellow flame of the
camphor flickered in the wind, and lit up her death-like head, almost touching
her chin; but she paid no heed to it. Her neck, as wrinkled as a mushroom, as
thin as a stick, was surrounded by three rows of golden medallions. Her
head was adorned with a golden snake. Her grotesque, hardly human body was
covered by a piece of saffron-yellow muslin.
The demoniac little
girls raised their heads from beneath the leaves, and set up a prolonged
animal-like howl. Their example was followed by the old man, who lay exhausted
by his frantic dance.
The witch tossed her
head convulsively, and began her invocations, rising on tiptoe, as if moved by
some external force.
"The goddess, one
of the seven sisters, begins to take possession of her," whispered Sham
Rao, not even thinking of wiping away the big drops of sweat that streamed from
his brow. "Look, look at her!"
This advice was quite
superfluous. We were looking at her, and at nothing else.
At first, the movements
of the witch were slow, unequal, somewhat convulsive; then, gradually, they
became less angular; at last, as if catching the cadence of the drums, leaning
all her long body forward, and writhing like an eel, she rushed round and round
the blazing bonfire. A dry leaf caught in a hurricane could not fly swifter.
Her bare bony feet trod noiselessly on the rocky ground. The long locks of her
hair flew round her like snakes, lashing the spectators, who knelt, stretching
their trembling arms towards her, and writhing as if they were alive. Whoever
was touched by one of this Fury's black curls, fell down on the ground,
overcome with happiness, shouting thanks to the goddess, and considering
himself blessed forever. It was not human hair that touched the happy elect, it
was the goddess herself, one of the seven.
Swifter and swifter fly
her decrepit legs; the young, vigorous hands of the drummer can hardly follow
her. But she does not think of catching the measure of his music; she rushes,
she flies forward. Staring with her expressionless, motionless orbs at
something before her, at something that is not visible to our mortal eyes, she
hardly glances at her worshippers; then her look becomes full of fire, and
whoever she looks at feels burned through to the marrow of his bones. At every
glance she throws a few grains of rice. The small handful seems inexhaustible,
as if the wrinkled palm contained the bottomless bag of Prince Fortunatus.
Suddenly she stops as if
thunderstruck.
The mad race round the
bonfire had lasted twelve minutes, but we looked in vain for a trace of fatigue
on the death-like face of the witch. She stopped only for a moment, just the
necessary time for the goddess to release her. As soon as she felt free, by a
single effort she jumped over the fire and plunged into the deep tank by the
portico. This time she plunged only once, and whilst she stayed under the water
the second sister-goddess entered her body. The little boy in white produced
another dish, with a new piece of burning camphor, just in time for the witch
to take it up, and to rush again on her headlong way.
The colonel sat with his
watch in his hand. During the second obsession the witch ran, leaped, and raced
for exactly fourteen minutes. After this, she plunged twice in the tank, in
honor of the second sister; and with every new obsession the number of her
plunges increased, till it became six.
It was already an hour
and a half since the race began. All this time the witch never rested,
stopping only for a few seconds, to disappear under the water.
"She is a fiend,
she cannot be a woman!" exclaimed the colonel, seeing the head of the
witch immersed for the sixth time in the water.
"Hang me if I
know!" grumbled Mr. Y—, nervously pulling his beard. "The only thing
I know is that a grain of her cursed rice entered my throat, and I can't get it
out!"
"Hush, hush!
Please, do be quiet!" implored Sham Rao. "By talking you will spoil
the whole business!"
I glanced at Narayan and
lost myself in conjectures.
His features, which
usually were so calm and serene, were quite altered at this moment by a deep
shadow of suffering. His lips trembled, and the pupils of his eyes were
dilated, as if by a dose of belladonna. His eyes were lifted over the heads of
the crowd, as if in his disgust he tried not to see what was before him, and at
the same time could not see it, engaged in a deep reverie which carried him
away from us and from the whole performance.
"What is the matter
with him?" was my thought, but I had no time to ask him, because the witch
was again in full swing, chasing her own shadow.
But with the seventh
goddess the program was slightly changed. The running of the old woman changed
to leaping. Sometimes bending down to the ground, like a black panther, she
leaped up to some worshipper, and halting before him touched his forehead with
her finger, while her long, thin body shook with inaudible laughter. Then,
again, as if shrinking back playfully from her shadow, and chased by it, in some
uncanny game, the witch appeared to us like a horrid caricature of Dinorah,
dancing her mad dance. Suddenly she straightened herself to her full height,
darted to the portico and crouched before the smoking censer, beating her
forehead against the granite steps. Another jump, and she was quite close to
us, before the head of the monstrous Sivatherium. She knelt down again and
bowed her head to the ground several times, with the sound of an empty barrel
knocked against something hard.
We had hardly the time
to spring to our feet and shrink back when she appeared on the top of the
Sivatherium's head, standing there amongst the horns.
Narayan alone did not
stir, and fearlessly looked straight in the eyes of the frightful sorceress.
But what was this? Who
spoke in those deep manly tones? Her lips were moving, from her breast were issuing
those quick, abrupt phrases, but the voice sounded hollow as if coming from
beneath the ground.
"Hush, hush!"
whispered Sham Rao, his whole body trembling. "She is going to
prophesy!..."
"She?"
incredulously inquired Mr. Y—. "This a woman's voice? I don't believe it
for a moment. Someone's uncle must be stowed away somewhere about the place.
Not the fabulous uncle she inherited from, but a real live one!..."
Sham Rao winced under
the irony of this supposition, and cast an imploring look at the speaker.
"Woe to you! woe to
you!" echoed the voice. "Woe to you, children of the impure Jaya and
Vijaya! of the mocking, unbelieving lingerers round great Shiva's door! Ye, who
are cursed by eighty thousand sages! Woe to you who believe not in the
goddess Kâli, and you who deny us, her seven divine sisters! Flesh-eating,
yellow-legged vultures! friends of the oppressors of our land! dogs who are not
ashamed to eat from the same trough with the Bellati!" (foreigners).
"It seems to me
that your prophetess only foretells the past," said Mr. Y—,
philosophically putting his hands in his pockets. "I should say that she
is hinting at you, my dear Sham Rao."
"Yes! and at us
also," murmured the colonel, who was evidently beginning to feel uneasy.
As to the unlucky Sham
Rao, he broke out in a cold sweat, and tried to assure us that we were
mistaken, that we did not fully understand her language.
"It is not about
you, it is not about you! It is of me she speaks, because I am in Government
service. Oh, she is inexorable!"
"Râkshasas!
Asuras!" thundered the voice. "How dare you appear before us? how
dare you to stand on this holy ground in boots made of a cow's sacred skin? Be
cursed for etern——"
But her curse was not
destined to be finished. In an instant the Hercules-like Narayan had fallen on
the Sivatherium, and upset the whole pile, the skull, the horns and the
demoniac Pythia included. A second more, and we thought we saw the witch flying
in the air towards the portico. A confused vision of a stout, shaven Brahman,
suddenly emerging from under the Sivatherium and instantly disappearing in the
hollow beneath it, flashed before my dilated eyes.
But, alas! after the
third second had passed, we all came to the embarrassing conclusion that,
judging from the loud clang of the door of the cave, the representative of
the Seven Sisters had ignominiously fled. The moment she had disappeared from
our inquisitive eyes to her subterranean domain, we all realized that the
unearthly hollow voice we had heard had nothing supernatural about it and
belonged to the Brahman hidden under the Sivatherium—to some one's live uncle,
as Mr. Y— had rightly supposed.
000
Oh, Narayan! how
carelessly, how disorderly the worlds rotate around us. I begin to seriously
doubt their reality. From this moment I shall earnestly believe that all things
in the universe are nothing but illusion, a mere Mâyâ. I am becoming a
Vedantin.... I doubt that in the whole universe there may be found anything
more objective than a Hindu witch flying up the spout.
000
Miss X— woke up, and
asked what was the meaning of all this noise. The noise of many voices and the
sounds of the many retreating footsteps, the general rush of the crowd, had
frightened her. She listened to us with a condescending smile, and a few yawns,
and went to sleep again.
Next morning, at
daybreak, we very reluctantly, it must be owned, bade good-by to the
kind-hearted, good-natured Sham Rao. The confoundingly easy victory of Narayan
hung heavily on his mind. His faith in the holy hermitess and the seven
goddesses was a good deal shaken by the shameful capitulation of the sisters,
who had surrendered at the first blow from a mere mortal. But during the dark
hours of the night he had had time to think it
over, and to shake off the uneasy feeling of having unwillingly misled and
disappointed his European friends.
Sham Rao still looked
confused when he shook hands with us at parting, and expressed to us the best
wishes of his family and himself.
As to the heroes of this
truthful narrative, they mounted their elephants once more, and directed their
heavy steps towards the high road and Jubbulpore.
18.REMARKABLE PSYCHIC EXPERIENCES OF FAMOUS
PERSONS
By
Walter F. Prince, Ph.D.,
Official Investigator American Society for
Psychical Research
It does not necessarily
give an occult incident more weight that it was experienced or related and
credited by a person whose name is prominent for one reason or another. The
great are nearly as likely to suffer illusions, pathological hallucinations, and
aberrations as the humble remainder of mankind, or, according to Lombroso a
good deal more so. Nor have famous persons a monopoly of veracity. Besides, a
rare psychological incident is not more or less a problem, nor has it more or
less significance in the experience of honest John Jones than in that of
William Shakespeare.
And yet it is natural
and quite proper to look with somewhat enhanced interest upon the experiences
or the testimonies of those whose names are in the cyclopedias and biographical
dictionaries. It is legitimate to set these forth and to call attention to
them. These persons at least we know something about. William Moggs of
Waushegan, Wisconsin, may be a very excellent and trustworthy man but we don't
know him, and it is tedious to be told that somebody else whom we may know
as little knows and esteems him. How do we know that the avouching unknown
could not have been sold a gold brick? But Henry M. Stanley, and General
Frémont, and W. P. Frith, and Henry Clews are characters whom we do know
something about, or at least whom we can easily look up for ourselves in
biographical dictionaries and Who's Whos. They are names which have
at the very outset a reputation which has impressed the world, which stand for
assured ability, genius, achievement, forcefulness of one kind or another. Even
though we have no particular data at hand regarding the veracity of a
particular member of the shining circle, it is not easy to see why he, having
an assured reputation, should dim it by telling spooky lies. It is easier to
conceive of William Moggs, a quite obscure man, calling attention to himself by
the device, though as a rule the William Moggs's do nothing of the kind. We
spontaneously argue within ourselves, in some inchoate fashion, "That
fellow made his mark in the world; he gained a big reputation by his
superiority to the rank and file in some particular at least; it will be worth
while to hear what he has to say."
We present herewith a
group of such testimonies either given out to the world by prominent persons as
their own experiences or as the experiences of persons whom they knew and
believed, or else as told by friends of the prominent persons whose experiences
they were.
It is not owing to any
selective process that the material is mostly of the sort which favors
supernormal hypotheses. We take what we can get. Whenever an experience is
accompanied by a normal explanation, such will be included only a little more
willingly than an experience which does not readily suggest a normal
explanation. But, let it be noted, the groups which we propose will be composed
of human experiences, and not opinions, except as the opinions
accompany the experiences. And it cannot be expected that, after certain types
of experiences as related by certain men have been given, we shall then proceed
to name other men who haven't had any such experiences. True, against Paul du
Chaillu's assertion that he had seen gorillas was once urged the fact that
nobody else had ever seen gorillas. Nevertheless the sole assertion of the one
man who had seen them proved to outweigh in value the lack of experience on the
part of all other travelers up to that time.
A Premonition of Sir H.
M. Stanley
This incident is related
by the famous explorer, Sir Henry M. Stanley, in his autobiography edited by
Dorothy Stanley (Houghton Mifflin Co., 1909), on pages 207-208.
Stanley, then a private
in the Confederate Army, was captured in the battle of Shiloh and sent to Camp
Douglas near Chicago. It was while here that the incident in question occurred.
"On the next day
(April 16), after the morning duties had been performed, the rations divided,
the cooks had departed contented, and the quarters swept, I proceeded to my
nest and reclined alongside of my friend Wilkes in a posture that gave me a
command of one half of the building. I made some remarks to him upon the
card-playing groups opposite, when suddenly, I felt a gentle stroke on the
back of my neck, and in an instant I was unconscious. The next moment I had a
vivid view of the village of Tremeirchion and the grassy slopes of the hills of
Hirradog, and I seemed to be hovering over the rook woods of Brynbella. I
glided to the bed-chamber of my Aunt Mary. My aunt was in bed, and seemed sick
unto death. I took a position by the side of the bed, and saw myself, with head
bent down, listening to her parting words which sounded regretful, as though
conscience smote her for not having been as kind as she might have been, or had
wished to be. I heard the boy say, 'I believe you, Aunt. It is neither your
fault, nor mine. You were good and kind to me, and I knew you wished to be
kinder; but things were so ordered that you had to be what you were. I also
dearly wished to love you, but I was afraid to speak of it lest you would check
me, or say something that would offend me. I feel our parting was in this
spirit. There is no need of regrets. You have done your duty to me, and you had
children of your own who required all your care. What has happened to me since,
it was decreed should happen. Farewell.'
"I put forth my
hand and felt the clasp of the long thin hands of the sore-sick woman. I heard
a murmur of farewell, and immediately I awoke.
"It appeared to me
that I had but closed my eyes. I was still in the same reclining attitude, the
groups opposite me were still engaged in their card games, Wilkes was in the
same position. Nothing had changed.
"I asked, 'What has
happened?'
"'What could
happen?' said he. 'What makes you ask? It is but a moment ago you were
speaking to me.'
"'Oh, I thought I
had been asleep a long time.'
"On the next day
the 17th of April, 1862, my Aunt Mary died at Fynnon Beuno, in Wales!
"I believe that the
soul of every human being has its attendant spirit—a nimble, delicate essence,
whose method of action is by a subtle suggestion which it contrives to
insinuate into the mind, whether asleep or awake. We are too gross to be
capable of understanding the signification of the dream, the vision, or the
sudden presage, or of divining the source of the premonition or its import. We
admit that we are liable to receive a fleeting picture of an act, or a figure
at any moment, but, except being struck by certain strange coincidences which
happen to most of us, we seldom make an effort to unravel the mystery. The swift,
darting messenger stamps an image on the mind, and displays a vision to the
sleeper; and if, as sometimes follows, among tricks and twists of the errant
mind, by reflex acts of memory, it happens to be a true representation of what
is to happen, we are left to grope hopelessly as to the manner and meaning of
it, for there is nothing tangible to lay hold of.
"There are many
things relating to my existence which are inexplicable to me, and probably it
is best so; this death-bed scene, projected on my mind's screen, across four
thousand five hundred miles of space, is one of these mysteries."
The precise meaning of
the passage wherein Sir Henry speculates on the nature and meaning of such
facts, is not entirely clear. Does he by the word spirit mean
what is usually meant by that term, or does he mean some part of the mind
functioning upon the rest as its object, like Freud's psychic censor though
with a different purpose? And the affirmative employment of the terms
"presage" and "premonition" do not seem to be consistent
with the expression "it happens to be a true representation of what is to
happen." It seems plain that the distinguished explorer did believe that
the death-bed scene was "projected on" his "mind's screen, across
four thousand five hundred miles of space." However, what Stanley thought
about the facts is of much less importance than the facts themselves, as
reported by one whose life was one long drill in observing, appraising and
recording facts.
Coincident Experiences
of General Frémont and Relatives
These are related on
pages 69-72 of Recollections of Elizabeth Benton Frémont, Daughter of
the Pathfinder General John C. Frémont and Jessie Benton Frémont His Wife.
After describing a
terrible experience of her father and his men in 1853, while crossing the
Wahsatch Mountains, and their rescue from starvation by reaching Parowan, Utah,
Miss Benton goes on:
"That night my
father sat by his campfire until late in the night, dreaming of home and
thinking of the great happiness of my mother. Could she but know that he was
safe! Finally he returned to his quarters in the town only a few hundred yards
away from the camp. The warm bright room, the white bed with all suggestion of
shelter and relief from danger made the picture of home rise up like a
real thing before him, and at half-past eleven at night he made an entry in his
journal, putting there the thought that had possession of him and that my
mother in far away Washington might know that all danger was past and that he
was safe and comfortable.
"All this is a
prelude to a most uncommon experience which befell my mother in our Washington
home on the night in question. We could not possibly hear from father at the
earliest until midsummer. Though my mother went into society but little that
year, there was no reason for gloomy forebodings. The younger members of the
family kept her in close touch with the social side of life, while her father,
whose confidant she always was, kept her informed as to the political events of
the moment. Her life was busy and filled with her full share of its
responsibilities. In midwinter, however, my mother became possessed with the
conviction that my father was starving, and no amount of reasoning could calm
her fears. The idea haunted her for two weeks or more, and finally began to
leave its physical effects upon her. She could neither eat nor sleep; open-air
exercise, plenty of company, the management of a household, all combined, could
not wean her from the belief that father and his men were starving in the
desert.
"The weight of fear
was lifted from her as suddenly as it came. Her young sister Susie and a party
of relatives returned from a wedding at General Jessup's on the night of
February 6, 1854, and came to mother to spend the night, in order not to awaken
the older members of my grandmother's family. The girls doffed their party
dresses, replaced them with comfortable woolen gowns, and, gathered before the
open fire in mother's room, were gaily relating the experiences of the evening.
The fire needed replenishing and mother went to an adjoining dressing-room to
get more wood. The old-fashioned fire-place required long logs which were too
large for her to handle, and as she half knelt, balancing the long sticks of
wood on her left arm, she felt a hand rest lightly on her left shoulder, and
she heard my father's laughing voice whisper her name, 'Jessie.'
"There was no sound
beyond the quick-whispered name, no presence, only the touch, but my mother
knew as people know in dreams that my father was there, gay and happy, and
intending to startle Susie, who when my mother was married was only a child of
eight, and was always a pet playmate of my father's. Her shrill, prolonged
scream was his delight, and he never lost an opportunity to startle her.
"Mother came back
to the girl's room, but before she could speak, Susie gave a great cry, fell in
a heap upon the rug, and screamed again and again, until mother crushed her
balldress over her head to keep the sound from the neighbors. Her cousin asked
mother what she had seen, and she explained that she had seen nothing, but had
heard my father tell her to keep still until he could scare Susie.
"Peace came to my
mother instantly, and on retiring she fell into a refreshing sleep from which
she did not waken until ten the next morning; all fear for the safety of father
had vanished from her mind; with sleep came strength, and she soon was her
happy self again.
"When my father
returned home, we learned that it was at the time the party was starving that my
mother had the premonition of evil having befallen them, and the entry in his
journal showed that exactly the moment he had written it in Parowan, my mother
had felt his presence, and in the wireless message from heart to heart knew
that my father was safe and free from harm. The hour exactly tallied with the
entry in his book, allowing for the difference in longitude."
Further details would
have been desirable, particularly just what was the immediate occasion of
Susie's fright, for she screamed before Mrs. Frémont related what had befallen
herself. The only escape from the conclusion that Susie had some separate
peculiar experience is to suppose—which we may not unreasonably do—that the
elder lady betrayed her own agitation before she spoke, perhaps by dropping the
sticks, hurrying back, and looking strangely at Susie. We would have liked a
sight of the General's journal, also, and to have been permitted to copy the
entry exactly as it stands.
Nevertheless, though we
leave Susie and her screams quite out of account, we have a very pretty case
remaining, however we explain it. Mrs. Frémont's depression might be explained
by the very natural fears of a woman whose husband was engaged in a possibly
dangerous expedition, though she picked out for her fears exactly the period of
the expedition when there was an actual state of privation and danger. But why
did the fear so afflicting to her health and spirits so suddenly leave
her, while it was still winter in the mountains? And why did the hour and moment
of the cessation of these fears coincide with the hour and moment when the
explorer was occupied with thoughts of home and writing his wish that his wife
might know that he was safe?
Many a reader will be
disposed to answer the question "why?" with the facile answer
"telepathy," but that word is a key which does not turn in this lock
with perfect ease. There are cases where one person thinks a particular thing
under extraordinary circumstances, and precisely that thought, or a
hallucination of precisely that nature, occurs to another person at a distance.
But in this case General Frémont thinks a wish that his wife knew he was safe,
and his wife seems to feel a hand upon her shoulder, seems to hear his voice
pronounce her name, and somehow gets the impression that he proposes to play a
trick on her sister Susie. If exact coincidence between the thought of the
supposed "sender" and that of the supposed "recipient" is a
support to the theory of telepathy as applied to one case, then wide
discrepancy between the coincident thoughts of two persons in another case
should be an argument against the theory of telepathy as applied to that. There
should be some limit to the handicap which, by way of courtesy, the spiritistic
hypothesis allows to the telepathic.
If there are spirits,
and if they have a certain access to human thoughts, and if the limitations of
space are little felt by them, then the spiritistic theory would have an easier
time than telepathy with the facts in this case. A friendly intermediary might convey
the assurance that the Pathfinder wanted conveyed to his wife, and in
doing so employ such devices as an intelligent personal agent could think up,
and were within its grasp. The touch, the hallucination of a voice resembling
that of the absent husband, the sense of gayety, and even the very
characteristic trait of liking to startle Susie, might all be the result of the
friendly messenger's attempts to implant in Mrs. Frémont's mind a fixed
assurance that somebody was safe and happy, and that this somebody was in very
truth her husband.
Incidents Related by
Dean Hole
The Very Rev. Samuel
Reynolds Hole, Dean of Rochester, England, was not only an effective preacher
and popular lecturer, but likewise the author of fascinating books, composed of
reminiscences and shrewd and witty comments upon men and affairs. He made two
lecturing tours in America.
His The Memories
of Dean Hole contains a remarkable dream of his own, and one of
similar character told him by a trusted friend. They may be found on pages
200-201. After rehearsing the account of a dream and its tragic sequel told him
many years before, he goes on:
"Are these dreams
coincidences only, imaginations, sudden recollections of events which had been
long forgotten? They are marvelous, be this as it may. In a crisis of very
severe anxiety, I required information which only one man could give me, and he
was in his grave. I saw him distinctly in a vision of the night, and his answer
to my question told me all I wanted to know; and when, having obtained the
clearest proof that what I had heard was true, I communicated the incident and
its results to my solicitor, he told me that he himself had experienced a
similar manifestation. A claim was repeated after his father's death which had
been resisted in his lifetime and retracted by the claimant, but the son was
unable to find the letter in which the retraction was made. He dreamed that his
father appeared and told him it was in the left hand drawer of a certain desk.
Having business in London, he went up to the offices of his father, an eminent
lawyer, but could not discover the desk, until one of the clerks suggested that
it might be among some old lumber placed in a room upstairs. There he found the
desk and the letter.
"Then, as regards
coincidence, are there not events in our lives which come to us with a strange
mysterious significance, a prophetic intimation, sometimes of sorrow and
sometimes of success? For example, I lived a hundred and fifty miles from
Rochester. I went there for the first time to preach at the invitation of one
who was then unknown to me, but is now a dear friend. After the sermon I was
his guest in the Precincts. Dean Scott died in the night, almost at the time
when he who was to succeed him arrived at the house which adjoins the Deanery.
There was no expectation of his immediate decease, and no conjecture as to a
future appointment, and yet when I heard the tolling of the cathedral bell, I
had a presentiment that Dr. Scott was dead, and that I should be Dean of Rochester."
Again, Dean Hole in
his Then and Now, pp. 9-11, together with some opinions of his,
sets down a seeming premonition and what he considers answers to prayer.
"There is an
immeasurable difference between ghosts and other apparitions—between that which
witnesses declare they saw with their own eyes when they were wide awake—as
Hamlet saw the ghost of his father, and Macbeth saw Banquo—and that which
presents itself to us when we are asleep, or in that condition between waking
and sleeping which makes the vision so like reality. I do not believe in the
former, and I am fully persuaded in my own mind that the wonderful stories
which we hear are to be accounted for either as exaggerations or as the result
of natural causes which have been misstated or suppressed; but many of us have
had experience of the latter—of those visions of the night which have seemed so
real, and which in some instances have brought us information as to occurrences
before unknown to us, but subsequently proved to be true.
"George Benfield, a
driver on the Midland Railway living at Derby, was standing on the footplate
oiling his engine, the train being stationary, when he slipped and fell on the
space between the lines. He heard the express coming on, and had only just time
to lie full length on the 'six-foot' when it rushed by, and he escaped unhurt.
He returned to his home in the middle of the night, and as he was going up the
stairs he heard one of his children, a girl about eight years old, crying and
sobbing. 'Oh, Father!' she said, 'I thought somebody came and told me that you
were going to be killed, and I got out of bed and prayed that God would not let
you die.' Was it only a dream, a coincidence?"
Dean Hole is the first
person whom we remember to have held that a man's testimony respecting a given
species of experience is more credible if he was asleep at the time that he
claims to have had it, than if he was awake. He states that dreams "in
some instances have brought us information as to occurrences before unknown to
us, but subsequently proved to be true," but the same is asserted in
respect to waking apparitional experiences on exactly as satisfactory evidence,
in many cases. He accounts for the wonderful stories we hear in respect to
waking apparitions, and discredits them on exactly the same grounds that others
account for and discredit his dreams. The fact is that, with Dean Hole as with
many others, the personal equation is operative. He believes in coincidental
dreams because he himself has experienced them and knows that he is not guilty
of exaggerations in recounting them, nor can he see how natural causes can
explain them; he never has had a waking apparition, and therefore is inclined
to conjure up guesses as to the inaccuracy and inveracity of those who
have—guesses which he would resent if they were applied to himself.
But the Dean's testimony
is one matter, his opinions or prejudices another.
Incidents Reported by
Serjeant Ballantine
Serjeant William
Ballantine (1812-1887) was one of the foremost lawyers in England, noted for
his skill in cross-examination. He was counsel in the Tichborne claimant case,
one of the most celebrated in the history of the English courts, and in the
equally famed trial of the Gaekwar of Baroda. The incidents which impressed
him are to be found in Ballantine's Some Experiences of a Barrister's
Life, pp. 256-267.
"I do not think it
will be out of place whilst upon this subject to relate a story told of Sir
Astley Cooper.[22] I
am not certain that it has not been already in print, but I know that I have
had frequent conversations about it with his nephew.
"There had been a
murder, and Sir Astley was upon the scene when a man suspected of it was
apprehended. Sir Astley, being greatly interested, accompanied the officers
with their prisoner to the gaol, and he and they and the accused were all in a
cell, locked in together, when they noticed a little dog which kept biting at
the skirt of the prisoner's coat. This led them to examine the garment, and
they found upon it traces of blood which ultimately led to conviction of the
man. When they looked around the dog had disappeared, although the door had
never been opened. How it had got there or how it got away, of course nobody
could tell. When Bransby Cooper spoke of this he always said that of course his
uncle had made a mistake, and was convinced of this himself; Bransby used to
add that no doubt if the matter had been investigated it would have been shown
that there was a mode of accounting for it from natural causes. But I believe
that neither Sir Astley nor his nephew in their hearts discarded entirely the
supernatural."
Mr. Ballantine added an
incident which some may think is accounted for by a telepathic impression
followed by auto-suggestion which lowered the mental alertness of the player.
"There was a member
of the club, a very harmless, inoffensive man of the name of Townend, for whom
Lord Lytton [the novelist] entertained a mortal antipathy, and would never play
whilst that gentleman was in the room. He firmly believed that he brought him
bad luck. I was witness to what must be termed an odd coincidence. One
afternoon, when Lord Lytton was playing and had enjoyed an uninterrupted run of
luck, it suddenly turned, upon which he exclaimed, 'I am sure that Mr. Townend
has come into the club.' Some three minutes after, just time enough to ascend
the stairs, in walked that unlucky personage. Lord Lytton as soon as the rubber
was over, left the table and did not renew the play."
Ben Jonson's Premonition
by Apparition
This eminent dramatist,
contemporary of Shakespeare (1573?-1637), visited the Scottish poet, William
Drummond, who took notes of his conversations which he afterwards published in
the form of a book. One incident which Jonson related and Drummond recorded may
be found in The Library of the World's Best Literature under
the title, Ben Jonson.
"At that tyme the
pest was in London; he being in the country—with old Cambden, he saw in a
vision his eldest sone, then a child and at London, appear unto him with the
mark of a bloodie crosse in his forehead, as if it had been cutted with a
shord, at which amazed he prayed unto God, and in the morning he came to
Mr. Cambden's chamber to tell him; who persuaded him it was but ane
apprehension of his fantasie, at which he sould not be disjected; in the mean
tyme comes then letters from his wife of the death of that boy in plague. He
appeared to him (he said) of a manly shape, and of that grouth that he thinks
he shall be at the resurrection."
Rubinstein's Death
Compact
A pupil of Anton
Rubinstein, the great pianist and composer (1829-1894), tells this story. It
may be found in Harper's Magazine for December, 1912, under
the title A Girl's Recollections of Rubinstein, by Lillian Nichia.
"One wild, blustery
night I found myself at dinner with Rubinstein, the weather being terrific even
for St. Petersburg. The winds were howling round the house and Rubinstein, who
liked to ask questions, inquired of me what they represented to my mind. I
replied, 'The moaning of lost souls.' From this a theological discussion
followed.
"'There may be a
future,' he said.
"'There is a
future,' I cried, 'a great and beautiful future. If I die first I shall come to
you and prove this.'
"He turned to me
with great solemnity.
"'Good, Liloscha,
that is a bargain; and I will come to you.'
"Six years later in
Paris I woke one night with a cry of agony and despair ringing in my ears, such
as I hope may never be duplicated in my lifetime. Rubinstein's face was
close to mine, a countenance distorted by every phase of fear, despair, agony,
remorse and anger. I started up, turned on all the lights, and stood for a
moment shaking in every limb, till I put fear from me and decided it was merely
a dream. I had for the moment completely forgotten our compact. News is always
late in Paris, and it was in Le Petit Journal, published in the
afternoon, that had the first account of his sudden death.
"Four years later,
Teresa Carreno, who had just come from Russia and was touring America—I had met
her in St. Petersburg frequently at Rubinstein's dinner-table—told me that
Rubinstein died with a cry of agony impossible of description. I knew then that
even in death Rubinstein had kept, as he always did, his word."
Here again, we are at
liberty to accept the testimony regarding the remarkable and complex
coincidence, and to disregard what is really an expression of opinion in the
last sentence. Whether Rubinstein remembered his compact in his dying hour, or
the impression produced upon his far-away pupil was automatically produced by
some obscure telepathic process, the dying man having in his mind no conscious
thought of his promise, or some intervening tertium quid produced
the impression, could never be determined by this incident alone.
Previsionary Dream by
Charles Dickens
This incident in the
experience of Charles Dickens (1812-1870) is to be found in the standard
biography[Pg 298] by Forster, III, pp. 484-5 (London,
1874). On May 30, 1863, Dickens wrote:
"Here is a curious
case at first-hand. On Thursday night in last week, being at my office here, I
dreamed that I saw a lady in a red shawl with her back toward me (whom I
supposed to be E—). On her turning round I found that I didn't know her, and
she said, 'I am Miss Napier.' All the time I was dressing next morning I
thought 'What a preposterous thing to have so very distinct a dream about
nothing!' and why Miss Napier?—for I never heard of any Miss Napier. That same
Friday night I read. After the reading, came into my retiring-room, Mary Boyle
and her brother, and the lady in the red shawl, whom they present as 'Miss
Napier.' These are all the circumstances exactly told."
I can imagine the late
Professor Royce saying thirty years ago—for I much doubt if he would have said
it twenty years later—"In certain people, under certain exciting
circumstances, there occur what I shall henceforth call Pseudo-presentiments, i.e.,
more or less instantaneous hallucinations of memory, which make it seem to one
that something which now excites or astonishes him has been prefigured in a
recent dream, or in the form of some other warning, although this seeming is
wholly unfounded, and although the supposed prophecy really succeeds its own
fulfillment."
Apply this curious
theory (which has probably not been urged for many years) to the incident just
cited, and see how loosely it fits. What was there about three persons, one a
stranger coming to Dickens after he had finished a reading from his own works,
to "excite" or "astonish" him, make his brain whirl
and bring about a hallucination of memory, an illusion of having dreamed it all
before? It was the most commonplace event to him. Besides, as in most such
cases, he had the distinct recollection of his thoughts about the dream after
waking, thoughts inextricably interwoven with the acts performed while
dressing! Besides, a pseudo-presentiment should tally with the event as a
reflection does with the object, but in the dream Miss Napier introduced
herself, while in reality she was introduced by another.
[1]By permission of The Century Co.
[2]From Pan's Garden, by Algernon
Blackwood—Permission of the Macmillan Company.
[3]From Ten-Minute Stories, published by E.
P. Dutton & Co.
[4]By permission of The Century Co.
[5]By permission of the author of War
Letters of the Living Dead Man and Mitchell Kennerley.
[6]From Karma (Boni &
Liveright).
[7]From "In the Midst of Life"
(Boni & Liveright).
[8]Referring to this photo elsewhere, he
wrote:—"This at least is not a case which telepathy can explain. Nor can
the hypothesis of fraud hold water. It was by the merest accident that I asked
the photographer to see if the spirit would give his name. No one in England,
so far as I have been able to ascertain, knew that any Piet Botha ever existed.
"As if to render
all explanation of fraud or contrivance still more incredible, it may be
mentioned that the Daily Graphic of October, 1889, which
announced that a Commandant Botha had been killed in the siege of Kimberley,
published a portrait alleged to be that of the dead commandant, which not only
does not bear the remotest resemblance to the Piet Botha of my photograph, but
which was described as Commandant Hans Botha!"
[9]Miss Katharine Bates was present when the Piet
Botha photograph was taken under the exact conditions specified by my father.
[10]Contullich: i.e. Ceann-nan-tulaich, "the
end of the hillocks." Loch a chaoruinn means the loch of the rowan-trees.
[11]"The farm in the hollow of the yellow
flowers."
[12]A chuid do Pharas da! "His share of
heaven be his." Gu'n gleidheadh Dia thu, "May God preserve you."
Gu'n beannaic-headh Dia an tigh! "God's blessing on this house."
[13]Droch caoidh ort! "May a fatal accident
happen to you" (lit. "bad moan on you"). Gaoth gun
direadh ort! "May you drift to your drowning" (lit. "wind
without direction on you"). Dia ad aghaidh, etc., "God against thee
and in thy face ... and may a death of woe be yours.... Evil and sorrow to thee
and thine!"
[14]i.e. With a criminal secret, or an
undiscovered crime.
[15]186,900 miles a second (J. Wallace Stewart,
B.Sc.).
[16]Termed teleplasma.
[17]By permission of the author.
[18]From Journal of Proceedings of Theosophical
Society.
[19]Fragments of Forgotten History.
[20]Fragments of Forgotten History.
[21]By which it is doubtless meant that the full individuality
is not present; the higher principles, the true spirit, having
ascended to its appropriate house, from which there is no attraction to earth.
That which materializes would be an elemental, or elementals molding their
fluidic forms in the likeness of the departed human being; or, on the other
hand, considering and revivifying the atomic remnants of the sidereal
encasement, or astral body, still left undissipated in the soul-world.
[22]Sir Astley Paston Cooper was perhaps the most
famous and influential surgeon of his time in England.
Comments
Post a Comment